Selected quad for the lemma: book_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
book_n church_n read_v write_v 2,919 5 5.4811 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A10345 The summe of the conference betwene Iohn Rainoldes and Iohn Hart touching the head and the faith of the Church. Wherein by the way are handled sundrie points, of the sufficiencie and right expounding of the Scriptures, the ministerie of the Church, the function of priesthood, the sacrifice of the masse, with other controuerises of religion: but chiefly and purposely the point of Church-gouernment ... Penned by Iohn Rainoldes, according to the notes set downe in writing by them both: perused by Iohn Hart, and (after things supplied, & altered, as he thought good) allowed for the faithfull report of that which past in conference betwene them. Whereunto is annexed a treatise intitled, Six conclusions touching the Holie Scripture and the Church, writen by Iohn Rainoldes. With a defence of such thinges as Thomas Stapleton and Gregorie Martin haue carped at therein. Rainolds, John, 1549-1607.; Hart, John, d. 1586. aut; Rainolds, John, 1549-1607. Sex theses de Sacra Scriptura, et Ecclesia. English. aut 1584 (1584) STC 20626; ESTC S115546 763,703 768

There are 43 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o show_n of_o word_n uuherefore_o it_o be_v needful_a since_o we_o seek_v herein_o to_o find_v out_o christ_n will_n that_o first_o we_o agree_v what_o way_n the_o right_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v know_v which_o see_v you_o will_v have_v i_o to_o fetch_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o i_o have_v no_o lust_n to_o go_v unto_o rome_n nor_o think_v it_o lodge_v in_o pope_n the_o vatican_n so_o that_o by_o this_o way_n no_o agreement_n can_v be_v make_v or_o end_n of_o controversy_n hope_v for_o i_o will_v take_v a_o short_a and_o a_o sure_a way_n confess_v by_o we_o both_o to_o be_v a_o good_a way_n whereby_o the_o right_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v find_v and_o so_o the_o will_n of_o christ_n be_v know_v hart._n what_o way_n may_v that_o be_v rainoldes_n to_o learn_v of_o christ_n himself_o the_o meaning_n of_o his_o word_n and_o let_v his_o spirit_n teach_v it_o that_o be_v to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n by_o the_o scripture_n a_o golden_a rule_n to_o know_v and_o try_v the_o truth_n from_o error_n prescribe_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o practise_v by_o his_o servant_n for_o the_o build_n of_o his_o church_n from_o age_n to_o age_n through_o all_o posterity_n for_o 19_o the_o holy_a ghost_n exhort_v the_o jew_n to_o compare_v the_o dark_a light_n of_o the_o prophet_n with_o the_o cléere_a of_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o day-brigtnesse_a of_o the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n may_v shine_v in_o their_o heart_n say_v that_o 20._o no_o prophecy_n of_o scripture_n be_v of_o a_o man_n own_o interpretation_n because_o in_o the_o prophecy_n that_o be_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o prophet_n they_o speak_v as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o as_o the_o will_n of_o man_n do_v fancy_n which_o reason_n since_o it_o impli_v as_o the_o prophet_n so_o the_o apostle_n and_o it_o be_v true_a in_o they_o all_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n speak_v as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o follow_v that_o all_o the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v expound_v by_o god_n because_o 3.16_o it_o be_v inspire_v of_o god_n as_o principum_fw-la nature_n light_n have_v teach_v that_o he_o who_o make_v the_o law_n shall_v interpret_v the_o law_n this_o rule_n commend_v to_o we_o by_o the_o prescript_n of_o god_n and_o as_o it_o be_v sanctify_v by_o 〈◊〉_d the_o levite_n practice_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o hebrues_n the_o apostle_n in_o the_o new_a the_o godly_a ancient_a pastor_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v follow_v in_o their_o preach_n their_o writing_n their_o decide_n of_o controversy_n in_o counsel_n uuherefore_o if_o you_o desire_v in_o deed_n the_o church_n exposition_n and_o will_v so_o fain_o find_v it_o you_o must_v go_v this_o way_n this_o be_v the_o church_n way_n that_o be_v the_o church_n sense_n to_o which_o this_o way_n do_v bring_v you_o for_o s._n austin_n lecto_fw-la who_o doctrine_n yourself_o do_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v ground_v on_o the_o law_n the_o manner_n the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n who_o you_o call_v a_o witness_n of_o the_o sincere_a truth_n and_o catholic_a religion_n such_o a_o witness_n as_o no_o exception_n can_v be_v make_v against_o who_o assure_v you_o as_o you_o say_v not_o only_o of_o his_o own_o but_o also_o of_o the_o common_a the_o constant_a faith_n and_o confession_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o the_o apostolic_a church_n this_o s._n austin_n have_v write_v four_o book_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n wherein_o he_o purposely_o entreat_v how_o man_n shall_v understand_v the_o scripture_n and_o expound_v it_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o his_o treatise_n do_v aim_v at_o this_o mark_n which_o i_o have_v point_v too_o that_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v learn_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 2._o by_o the_o consideration_n of_o thing_n and_o word_n in_o it_o that_o 35._o the_o end_n whereto_o 37._o the_o matter_n whereof_o it_o be_v all_o write_v be_v mark_v in_o general_a 40._o and_o all_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o that_o end_n and_o matter_n that_o 8._o all_o be_v read_v over_o &_o over_o &_o 9_o those_o thing_n chief_o note_v which_o be_v set_v down_o plain_o both_o precept_n of_o life_n and_o rule_n of_o belief_n because_o that_o all_o thing_n which_o concern_v belief_n and_o life_n be_v plain_o write_v in_o it_o that_o obscure_a &_o dark_a speech_n be_v lighten_v and_o open_v by_o the_o plain_a and_o manifest_a that_o to_o remove_v the_o doubt_n of_o uncertain_a sentence_n the_o clear_a and_o certain_a be_v follow_v that_o 11._o recourse_n be_v have_v unto_o the_o greek_a and_o hebrew_n copy_n to_o clear_v out_o of_o the_o fountain_n if_o the_o translation_n be_v muddy_a that_o 3_o doubtful_a place_n be_v expound_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o be_v teach_v out_o of_o the_o plain_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o all_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n be_v weigh_v what_o go_v before_o what_o come_v after_o 5._o the_o manner_n how_o 10._o the_o cause_n why_o 17._o the_o man_n to_o who_o 18._o the_o time_n when_o every_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v short_a that_o 27._o still_o we_o seek_v to_o know_v the_o will_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o author_n by_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v speak_v if_o we_o find_v it_o not_o yet_o give_v such_o a_o sense_n as_o agree_v with_o the_o right_a faith_n approve_v by_o some_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n 28._o if_o a_o sense_n be_v give_v the_o uncertainty_n whereof_o can_v be_v discuss_v by_o certain_a and_o sure_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o reason_n but_o this_o custom_n be_v dangerous_a the_o safe_a way_n far_o be_v to_o walk_v by_o the_o scripture_n the_o which_o be_v shadow_v with_o dark_a and_o borrow_a word_n when_o we_o mind_n to_o search_v let_v either_o that_o come_v out_o of_o it_o which_o have_v no_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n or_o if_o it_o have_v doubt_n let_v it_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o same_o scripture_n through_o witness_n to_o be_v find_v &_o use_v thence_o wheresoever_o that_o so_o to_o conclude_v 3._o all_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v expound_v by_o the_o scripture_n the_o which_o be_v call_v canonical_a as_o be_v the_o canon_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o rule_n of_o godliness_n and_o faith_n thus_o you_o see_v the_o way_n the_o way_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n which_o christ_n have_v prescribe_v the_o church_n have_v receive_v s._n austin_n have_v declare_v both_o by_o his_o precept_n and_o his_o practice_n both_o in_o this_o treatise_n and_o in_o epist_n other_o agréeable_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n which_o way_n since_o it_o be_v like_v both_o by_o we_o and_o you_o though_o not_o so_o much_o follow_v of_o you_o as_o of_o we_o i_o wish_v that_o the_o worthiness_n thereof_o may_v persuade_v you_o to_o practice_v it_o yourself_o but_o it_o must_v enforce_v you_o at_o least_o to_o allow_v it_o hart._n i_o grant_v it_o neither_o can_v nor_o aught_o to_o be_v deny_v that_o every_o one_o of_o those_o thing_n and_o special_o if_o they_o be_v join_v all_o together_o do_v help_v very_o much_o to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n right_o but_o ●_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o so_o sure_a and_o certain_a mean_n as_o some_o other_o be_v which_o we_o prefer_v before_o they_o neither_o do_v they_o help_v always_o nay_o sometime_o they_o do_v hurt_v rather_o and_o deceive_v great_o such_o as_o expound_v the_o scripture_n after_o they_o this_o be_v not_o only_o say_v but_o also_o prove_v at_o large_a out_o of_o the_o doctor_n and_o father_n by_o that_o worthy_a man_n of_o great_a wit_n and_o judgement_n our_o countryman_n m._n stapleton_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n the_o king_n professor_n of_o controversy_n in_o the_o university_n of_o douai_n of_o who_o most_o wholesome_a work_n entitle_v a_o methodical_a demonstration_n of_o doctrinal_a principle_n of_o the_o faith_n one_o book_n be_v whole_o spend_v to_o show_v the_o mean_n way_n and_o order_n how_o to_o make_v authentical_a interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o which_o he_o lay_v this_o for_o a_o ground_n that_o 1._o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v right_o understand_v but_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n whereupon_o 2._o he_o condemn_v the_o protestant_n opinion_n that_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n must_v be_v fetch_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n which_o error_n of_o you_o to_o overthrow_v the_o more_o full_o he_o deliver_v four_o mean_n of_o expound_v the_o scripture_n 3._o the_o first_o very_o certain_a and_o sure_a the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 4._o the_o next_o no_o less_o certain_a the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n 5._o the_o three_o at_o least_o probable_a the_o consent_n of_o the_o father_n 6._o the_o last_o most_o
and_o they_o he_o will_v take_v their_o son_n and_o appoint_v they_o to_o wait_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v his_o horseman_n footman_n captain_n to_o ear_n his_o land_n to_o reap_v his_o harvest_n to_o make_v he_o instrument_n of_o war_n &_o instrument_n to_o serve_v his_o charet_n he_o will_v take_v their_o daughter_n to_o dress_v he_o sweet_a ointment_n and_o be_v his_o cook_n and_o baker_n he_o will_v take_v their_o field_n and_o vineyard_n and_o olive_n tree_n the_o best_a &_o give_v they_o to_o his_o servant_n yea_o the_o ten_o of_o their_o seed_n and_o of_o their_o vineyard_n &_o give_v it_o to_o his_o courtier_n and_o to_o his_o servant_n he_o will_v take_v their_o man_n their_o maid_n their_o youth_n their_o cattle_n &_o put_v they_o to_o his_o work_n he_o will_v take_v the_o ten_o of_o their_o flock_n and_o to_o conclude_v they_o shall_v be_v his_o servant_n even_o so_o when_o the_o pope_n have_v get_v the_o kingdom_n that_o be_v the_o supremacy_n over_o the_o israelite_n of_o god_n that_o be_v christian_n he_o take_v their_o son_n &_o daughter_n nay_o their_o father_n and_o mother_n who_o shall_v beget_v they_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o feed_v they_o with_o the_o milk_n of_o life_n and_o appoint_v they_o to_o serve_v he_o to_o be_v his_o chauncellor_n treasurer_n secretary_n master_n of_o request_n clerk_n of_o the_o escheke_a legate_n in_o peace_n to_o go_v on_o embassage_n in_o war_n to_o look_v unto_o his_o army_n he_o take_v their_o bishopricke_n and_o benefice_n and_o prebend_n the_o best_a and_o give_v they_o to_o his_o servant_n yea_o the_o first_o fruit_n and_o tithe_n of_o their_o live_n and_o give_v they_o to_o his_o courtier_n and_o to_o his_o servant_n he_o take_v their_o pastor_n their_o doctor_n their_o elder_n their_o deacons_n and_o put_v they_o to_o his_o work_n he_o take_v the_o tithe_n of_o their_o church_n nay_o their_o whole_a church_n and_o to_o conclude_v both_o they_o and_o they_o be_v make_v to_o serve_v he_o if_o you_o m._n hart_n who_o have_v be_v at_o rome_n and_o see_v the_o pope_n person_n have_v not_o yet_o perceive_v this_o policy_n of_o the_o pope_n your_o want_n of_o experience_n or_o rather_o your_o education_n in_o a_o popish_a seminary_n where_o other_o kind_n of_o book_n be_v give_v you_o to_o read_v then_o as_o bewray_v such_o mystery_n may_v bear_v the_o fault_n of_o it_o but_o there_o be_v two_o italian_n of_o your_o own_o profession_n franciscus_n sansovinus_n and_o onuphrius_n the_o friar_n of_o who_o 11._o the_o one_o have_v write_v a_o treatise_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n pontific_n the_o other_o sundry_a book_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n by_o they_o you_o may_v learn_v it_o for_o onuphrius_n show_v cardinalium_fw-la that_o there_o be_v three_o sort_n of_o the_o church-officer_n which_o be_v name_v cardinal_n the_o first_o bishop_n the_o second_o priest_n and_o the_o last_o deacon_n priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o the_o parish_n that_o be_v within_o rome_n bishop_n of_o the_o city_n that_o lie_v near_o about_o it_o when_o rome_n have_v receive_v the_o christian_a faith_n and_o the_o church_n increase_v there_o from_o day_n to_o day_n the_o faithful_a be_v divide_v into_o sundry_a parish_n for_o their_o better_a government_n and_o have_v elder_n and_o deacon_n ordain_v to_o attend_v they_o presbyteri_fw-la elder_n or_o as_o you_o term_v they_o priest_n and_o i_o will_v call_v they_o so_o because_o i_o speak_v of_o cardinal_n know_v by_o that_o title_n be_v they_o to_o who_o the_o charge_n of_o minister_a the_o word_n and_o sacracrament_n deacon_n to_o who_o the_o care_n for_o the_o poor_a of_o the_o church_n and_o their_o provision_n be_v commit_v now_o at_o first_o the_o parish_n have_v each_o but_o one_o priest_n while_o they_o be_v small_a one_o pastor_n can_v discharge_v the_o duty_n but_o after_o when_o the_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a grow_v each_o of_o they_o have_v more_o and_o presbyteri_fw-la hence_o do_v the_o name_n of_o cardinal_n arise_v that_o he_o who_o be_v chief_a among_o the_o priest_n of_o one_o parish_n be_v call_v the_o cardinal_n priest_n that_o be_v to_o say_v principal_a in_o like_a sort_n diaconi_fw-la when_o the_o several_a ward_n of_o the_o city_n can_v not_o be_v serve_v by_o several_a deacon_n but_o each_o of_o they_o have_v more_o the_o chief_a among_o the_o deacon_n of_o the_o same_o ward_n be_v call_v the_o cardinal_n deacon_n the_o name_n be_v worshipful_a among_o priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n episcopi_fw-la spread_v to_o the_o bishop_n that_o dwell_v near_o about_o and_o they_o be_v call_v cardinal_n bishop_n though_o it_o be_v long_o first_o for_o dici_fw-la among_o the_o ancient_n it_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o neither_o might_n with_o reason_n fith_o they_o be_v equal_a in_o power_n to_o other_o bishop_n can_v be_v call_v cardinal_n in_o respect_n of_o they_o yet_o in_o time_n by_o custom_n i_o know_v not_o how_o they_o get_v it_o wherefore_o of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o rome_n six_o be_v bishop_n the_o bishop_n of_o alba_n tusculum_n praeneste_n sabine_n portuese_n and_o ostia_n the_o rest_n who_o number_n in_o old_a time_n be_v certain_a according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o parish_n and_o ward_n now_o they_o be_v more_o or_o few_o as_o the_o pope_n will_v they_o be_v three_o score_n and_o three_o 1557._o when_o this_o be_v write_v by_o onuphrius_n but_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v priest_n or_o deacon_n and_o for_o almost_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n although_o the_o pope_n employ_v they_o much_o in_o his_o affair_n yet_o ordinary_o they_o live_v on_o their_o charge_n and_o keep_v their_o call_n and_o degree_n the_o honour_n &_o power_n of_o cardinal_n bishop_n be_v as_o the_o bishop_n of_o other_o city_n the_o cardinal_n priest_n and_o deacon_n be_v neither_o bishop_n themselves_o nor_o equal_a unto_o they_o in_o dignity_n and_o if_o a_o cardinal_n priest_n be_v choose_v as_o worthy_a of_o a_o great_a charge_n to_o be_v a_o bishop_n else_o where_o he_o leave_v his_o place_n in_o rome_n and_o cease_v to_o be_v cardinal_n because_o posse_fw-la it_o be_v order_v by_o the_o ancient_a rule_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n that_o one_o man_n may_v have_v but_o one_o ecclesiastical_a charge_n and_o therefore_o no_o man_n may_v be_v a_o cardinal_n priest_n of_o rome_n and_o bishop_n of_o a_o other_o church_n but_o conculcato_fw-la after_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v tread_v the_o emperor_n under_o foot_n &_o lift_v up_o his_o own_o throne_n above_o the_o high_a throne_n on_o earth_n he_o lift_v up_o withal_o crevit_fw-la the_o maiest●ie_n of_o the_o cardinal_n as_o of_o his_o noble_a man_n and_o counselor_n and_o use_v they_o as_o principal_a pillar_n of_o his_o state_n he_o give_v to_o they_o alone_o the_o right_n of_o choose_v the_o pope_n the_o people_n prince_n and_o clergy_n be_v rob_v of_o it_o he_o deck_v they_o with_o honour_n of_o wear_v red_a hat_n and_o go_v first_o before_o bishop_n afterward_o before_o archbishop_n and_o at_o the_o last_o before_o patriarch_n cardinalibus_fw-la he_o choose_v the_o great_a prelate_n of_o sundry_a diocese_n and_o province_n as_o of_o york_n for_o example_n and_o canterbury_n in_o england_n rheims_n and_o rouen_n in_o france_n toledo_n in_o spain_n lisbon_n in_o portugal_n milan_n ravenna_n venice_n in_o italy_n in_o germany_n coolcin_n trier_n and_o man_n in_o boheme_n praga_n cracovia_n in_o poleland_n strigonium_n in_o hungary_n and_o so_o forth_o the_o chief_a bishop_n of_o all_o christendom_n to_o be_v his_o cardinal_n priest_n and_o deacon_n yea_o they_o be_v glad_a to_o be_v so_o because_o the_o cardinalship_n be_v a_o degree_n unto_o the_o popedom_n card._n neither_o do_v he_o accustom_v they_o to_o give_v over_o their_o bishoply_n charge_n that_o other_o place_v in_o their_o room_n may_v supply_v that_o duty_n and_o they_o may_v attend_v their_o charge_n of_o cardinal_n priestship_n and_o deaconship_n in_o rome_n but_o for_o the_o better_a maintenance_n of_o their_o own_o port_n and_o strengthen_v of_o the_o popedom_n he_o suffer_v they_o to_o keep_v the_o live_n of_o their_o bishopricke_n and_o cardinalship_n both_o wherein_o least_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o break_v that_o rule_n of_o discipline_n one_o man_n to_o have_v but_o one_o charge_n he_o take_v order_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v call_v bishop_n though_o they_o have_v bishopricke_n how_o then_o forsooth_o a_o bishop_n if_o he_o be_v make_v cardinal_n deacon_n must_v be_v call_v elect_a bishop_n if_o he_o be_v make_v cardinal_n priest_n must_v be_v call_v perpetual_a administrator_n of_o his_o bishopric_n as_o namely_o thomas_n wolsey_n archbishop_n of_o york_n when_o he_o be_v make_v cardinal_n parish-priest_n of_o rome_n he_o must_v be_v call_v not_o archbishop_n but_o cardinal_n woolsey_n eboracensis_n priest_n
name_n that_o be_v coenobitae_fw-la solitary_a and_o not_o collegiate_n moonke_n but_o the_o beléever_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v at_o jerusalem_n in_o a_o city_n and_o live_v in_o fellowship_n together_o do_v you_o not_o see_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolic_a man_n be_v not_o such_o as_o afterward_o the_o moonke_n who_o jerom_o mean_v and_o therefore_o jerom_o be_v deceive_v hart._n i_o will_v not_o believe_v on_o your_o word_n that_o so_o worthy_a a_o father_n be_v deceive_v rainoldes_n if_o you_o will_v not_o on_o my_o word_n i_o will_v bring_v his_o own_o word_n to_o make_v you_o believe_v it_o for_o monachi_fw-la write_v to_o paulinus_n touch_v the_o train_n up_o of_o moonke_n he_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolic_a man_n be_v not_o pattern_n for_o they_o to_o follow_v but_o s._n antony_n and_o other_o who_o dwell_v in_o field_n and_o desert_n hart._n he_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolic_a man_n be_v set_v for_o a_o example_n to_o priest_n and_o bishop_n not_o to_o moonke_n true_a in_o some_o respect_n and_o yet_o i_o think_v too_o but_o what_o if_o the_o father_n perhaps_o may_v be_v deceive_v so_o through_o oversight_n rainoldes_n if_o they_o may_v be_v deceive_v so_o through_o oversight_n they_o may_v be_v deceive_v through_o affection_n also_o for_o they_o be_v man_n and_o subject_a to_o it_o as_o jubaian_a cyprian_a through_o too_o much_o hatred_n of_o heretic_n condemn_v the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n as_o unlawful_a wherein_o cypriano_n a_o council_n err_v with_o he_o as_o 17._o origen_n through_o too_o much_o compassion_n of_o the_o wicked_a think_v that_o the_o devil_n they_o ●elues_n shall_v be_v save_v at_o length_n as_o tertullianus_n tertullian_n through_o spite_n of_o the_o roman_a clergy_n revolt_v to_o the_o montanist_n and_o psychicos_fw-la call_v the_o catholic_n carnal_a man_n because_o they_o be_v not_o so_o precise_a as_o the_o montanist_n in_o point_n of_o marriage_n and_o fast_v hart._n we_o condemn_v these_o error_n in_o they_o as_o well_o as_o you_o and_o do_v therein_o except_o against_o they_o rainoldes_n you_o do_v except_o also_o i_o trow_v i_o be_o sure_a 3._o your_o doctor_n do_v against_o fid_fw-we damascene_fw-la for_o his_o tale_n of_o gregory_n the_o pope_n and_o trajan_n the_o emperor_n that_o gregory_n while_o he_o go_v over_o the_o market_n place_n of_o trajan_n do_v pray_v for_o traian_n soul_n to_o god_n and_o behold_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n i_o have_v hear_v thy_o prayer_n and_o i_o pardon_v trajan_n but_o see_v that_o thou_o pray_v no_o more_o to_o i_o for_o the_o wicked_a a_o very_a great_a affection_n to_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a that_o move_v damascene_fw-la to_o write_v this_o for_o it_o be_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o distinct_a schoolman_n that_o prayer_n may_v help_v out_o the_o soul_n that_o be_v in_o hell_n in_o purgatory_n they_o say_v they_o may_v hart._n 2._o s._n thomas_n do_v confirm_v the_o same_o yet_o he_o beléeve_v that_o of_o damascene_fw-la but_o he_o say_v that_o gregory_n do_v it_o by_o special_a privilege_n which_o do_v not_o break_v the_o common_a law_n rainoldes_n but_o your_o 2._o canus_n say_v that_o thomas_n be_v a_o young_a man_n then_o beside_o that_o he_o be_v great_o affect_v to_o damascen_n and_o damascen_n may_v easy_o persuade_v a_o well_o willer_n he_o do_v affirm_v so_o lusty_o that_o 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o east_n and_o west_n be_v witness_n that_o the_o thing_n be_v true_a which_o report_n of_o his_o yet_o canus_n do_v marvel_n at_o since_o it_o be_v unknown_a in_o all_o the_o latin_a story_n but_o 6._o canus_n as_o a_o man_n of_o better_a mind_n and_o sound_a judgement_n than_o your_o popish_a doctor_n be_v the_o most_o of_o they_o do_v wise_o see_v &_o note_v free_o that_o not_o only_o late_a and_o less_o discreet_a autour_n as_o he_o who_o make_v the_o golden_a legend_n but_o also_o grave_a ancient_a learned_a holy_a father_n have_v overshoot_v themselves_o in_o write_v miracle_n of_o saint_n partly_o while_o they_o fetch_v the_o truth_n where_o it_o be_v seldom_o rumoribus_fw-la from_o common_a rumour_n and_o report_n partly_o while_o vulgo_fw-la they_o seek_v to_o please_v the_o people_n humour_n and_o think_v it_o lawful_a for_o historian_n to_o write_v thing_n as_o true_a which_o common_o be_v count_v true_a of_o this_o sort_n he_o name_v dialogis_fw-la gregory_n and_o anglorum_fw-la bede_n the_o one_o for_o his_o dialogue_n the_o other_o for_o his_o english_a story_n he_o may_v have_v name_v damascene_fw-la with_o they_o unless_o he_o mean_v he_o rather_o perhaps_o to_o be_v of_o that_o sort_n which_o do_v not_o only_o take_v by_o hearsay_n of_o other_o but_o coin_a lie_v themselves_o too_o &_o write_v those_o thing_n of_o saint_n dictat_fw-la which_o their_o fancy_n like_v though_o neither_o true_a nor_o likely_a as_o that_o s._n francis_n immittere_fw-la be_v wont_a to_o take_v lise_fw-fr that_fw-mi be_v shake_v off_o and_o put_v they_o on_o himself_o it_o be_v a_o lousy_a trick_n and_o s._n francis_n do_v it_o not_o but_o the_o writer_n think_v it_o a_o argument_n of_o his_o holiness_n likewise_o that_o when_o the_o devil_n trouble_v s._n dominike_n s._n dominike_n constrain_v manibus_fw-la he_o to_o hold_v a_o candle_n in_o his_o hand_n till_o the_o candle_n be_v spend_v do_v put_v he_o to_o great_a grief_n in_o burn_v his_o finger_n such_o example_n there_o be_v innumerable_a but_o these_o two_o may_v give_v a_o taste_n of_o their_o affection_n who_o have_v defile_v the_o story_n of_o saint_n with_o filthy_a fable_n yet_o out_o of_o such_o story_n many_o thing_n be_v read_v in_o your_o church-seruice_n and_o 5._o canus_n although_o he_o confess_v it_o as_o evident_a notwithstanding_o which_o be_v strange_a he_o think_v they_o unwise_a bishop_n who_o seek_v to_o reform_v it_o for_o while_o they_o cure_v the_o nailesore_n say_v he_o they_o hurt_v the_o head_n that_o be_v in_o steed_n of_o counterfeit_v they_o bring_v in_o grave_a story_n but_o they_o change_v the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n so_o far_o that_o scarce_o any_o religionis_fw-la show_n of_o the_o old_a religion_n be_v remain_v in_o it_o a_o thing_n well_o consider_v of_o they_o by_o who_o your_o roman_a portesse_n be_v reform_v for_o though_o they_o have_v remove_v some_o of_o those_o story_n which_o canus_n say_v be_v falsa_fw-la uncertain_a forge_a frivolous_a and_o false_a yet_o have_v they_o do_v it_o spare_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v leave_v out_o all_o those_o legend-toye_n their_o portesse_n have_v be_v like_o our_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n which_o heretic_n will_v have_v laugh_v at_o and_o there_o have_v remain_v no_o show_n in_o a_o manner_n of_o the_o old_a religion_n save_v that_o their_o service_n be_v in_o latin_n hart._n these_o thing_n be_v impertinent_a but_o that_o it_o please_v you_o to_o play_v the_o hickescorner_n with_o the_o holy_a portesse_n for_o what_o need_v you_o mention_v the_o writer_n of_o s._n francis_n life_n or_o s._n dominikes_n or_o the_o golden_a legend_n that_o old_a moth-eaten_a book_n as_o d._n 4._o harding_n call_v it_o of_o the_o life_n of_o saint_n i_o mind_v not_o to_o press_v you_o with_o thing_n of_o late_a writer_n but_o of_o old_a and_o ancient_a who_o canus_n judge_v better_a of_o then_o of_o the_o young_a for_o ●_o he_o say_v of_o vincentius_n beluacensis_n and_o antoninus_n that_o they_o care_v not_o so_o much_o to_o write_v thing_n true_a and_o certain_a as_o to_o let_v go_v nothing_o that_o they_o find_v write_v in_o any_o paper_n whatsoever_o but_o of_o bede_n and_o gregory_n he_o judge_v more_o soft_o and_o rather_o excuse_v they_o then_o reprove_v they_o though_o judge_v he_o how_o he_o list_v he_o be_v but_o one_o doctor_n and_o other_o learned_a man_n perhaps_o mislike_v his_o judgement_n both_o for_o young_a and_o elder_a writer_n rainoldes_n they_o who_o deal_v with_o tame_v of_o lion_n i_o have_v read_v be_v wont_a when_o they_o find_v they_o somewhat_o out_o of_o order_n to_o beat_v dog_n before_o they_o that_o in_o a_o dog_n the_o lion_n may_v see_v his_o own_o desert_n even_o so_o when_o i_o rebuke_v the_o writer_n of_o s._n francis_n life_n or_o of_o s._n dominike_v or_o of_o the_o moth-eaten_a book_n as_o you_o call_v it_o italy_n though_o he_o who_o write_v it_o be_v a_o archbishop_n &_o in_o his_o time_n a_o man_n of_o name_n and_o his_o book_n a_o legend_n read_v public_o in_o church_n and_o call_v golden_a for_o the_o excellency_n but_o when_o i_o rebuke_v that_o moth-eaten_a writer_n or_o antoninus_n if_o you_o will_v and_o vincentius_n beluacensis_n who_o be_v as_o good_a as_o he_o wellnigh_o you_o must_v not_o think_v i_o do_v it_o for_o the_o dog_n sake_n but_o for_o the_o lion_n rather_o i_o mean_v the_o ancient_a writer_n who_o deserve_v rebuke_v too_o for_o as_o not_o 15._o rupertus_n
same_o favour_n if_o i_o will_v admit_v it_o which_o i_o ground_v myself_o upon_o the_o most_o certain_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n so_o strengthen_v by_o god_n that_o it_o shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o do_v glad_o yield_v to_o and_o as_o become_v i_o accept_v of_o it_o with_o all_o duty_n whereupon_o his_o honour_n send_v for_o m._n rainoldes_n to_o confer_v with_o i_o take_v order_n also_o that_o i_o shall_v be_v furnish_v with_o whatsoever_o book_n i_o do_v need_v thereto_o but_o after_o we_o have_v spend_v certain_a week_n together_o in_o conference_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o i_o continue_v still_o in_o my_o former_a mind_n he_o desire_v to_o have_v the_o sum_n thereof_o in_o writing_n that_o he_o may_v see_v the_o ground_n on_o which_o i_o stand_v and_o to_o this_o intent_n we_o set_v down_o together_o brief_a note_n of_o the_o point_n that_o we_o deal_v in_o i_o show_v my_o reason_n with_o the_o place_n of_o the_o autour_n who_o judgement_n and_o learning_n i_o rather_o trust_v too_o then_o to_o my_o own_o skill_n and_o m._n rainoldes_n answer_v they_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o think_v good_a howbeit_o those_o note_n be_v so_o short_a as_o point_v to_o thing_n rather_o than_o unfolding_n they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o well_o be_v understand_v by_o any_o but_o ourselves_o only_o unless_o they_o be_v draw_v more_o large_o and_o at_o full_a myself_o be_v trouble_v then_o with_o more_o necessary_a cogitation_n of_o death_n as_o altogether_o uncertain_a when_o i_o may_v be_v call_v to_o yield_v up_o my_o account_n before_o god_n and_o man_n request_v m._n rainoldes_n to_o take_v pain_n to_o pen_n they_o according_a to_o our_o note_n thereof_o promise_v he_o that_o i_o will_v peruse_v it_o when_o he_o have_v do_v it_o and_o allow_v of_o it_o if_o it_o be_v to_o my_o mind_n or_o otherwise_o correct_v if_o i_o mislike_v aught_o in_o it_o this_o pain_n he_o undertake_v and_o send_v i_o the_o part_n thereof_o from_o time_n to_o time_n as_o he_o finish_v they_o i_o note_v such_o thing_n as_o i_o will_v have_v add_v or_o alter_v therein_o and_o he_o perform_v it_o according_o but_o when_o i_o perceive_v that_o it_o be_v prepare_v to_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o print_n i_o seek_v mean_n to_o stay_v it_o all_o that_o i_o can_v for_o some_o consideration_n which_o seem_v to_o i_o very_o great_a and_o important_a marry_o since_o that_o again_o understand_v it_o to_o be_v his_o honour_n pleasure_n that_o it_o shall_v go_v forward_o whereunto_o he_o grant_v i_o also_o by_o special_a warrant_v the_o use_n of_o such_o book_n as_o i_o shall_v call_v for_o to_o help_v myself_o withal_o i_o set_v afresh_o upon_o it_o &_o by_o letter_n write_v unto_o m._n rainoldes_n &_o receive_v from_o he_o i_o have_v i_o own_o speech_n &_o reason_n perfect_v as_o i_o will_v wherefore_o i_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o have_v set_v down_o herein_o a_o true_a report_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o pass_v in_o conference_n between_o we_o according_a to_o the_o ground_n and_o place_n of_o the_o autour_n which_o i_o have_v quote_v &_o refer_v myself_o too_o as_o for_o that_o which_o he_o affirm_v division_n in_o one_o place_n that_o i_o have_v tell_v he_o that_o my_o opinion_n be_v the_o pope_n may_v not_o depose_v prince_n in_o deed_n i_o tell_v he_o so_o much_o and_o in_o truth_n i_o think_v that_o although_o the_o spiritual_a power_n be_v more_o excellent_a &_o worthy_a they_o the_o temporal_a yet_o they_o be_v both_o of_o god_n neither_o do_v the_o one_o depend_v of_o the_o other_o whereupon_o i_o gather_v as_o a_o certain_a conclusion_n that_o the_o opinion_n of_o they_o who_o hold_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v a_o temporal_a lord_n over_o king_n &_o prince_n be_v unreasonable_a and_o unprobable_a altogether_o for_o he_o have_v not_o to_o meddle_v with_o they_o or_o they_o civil_o much_o less_o to_o depose_v they_o or_o give_v away_o their_o kingdom_n that_o be_v no_o part_n of_o his_o commission_n he_o have_v in_o my_o judgement_n the_o fatherhood_n of_o the_o church_n not_o a_o princehood_n of_o the_o world_n christ_n himself_o take_v no_o such_o title_n upon_o he_o nor_o give_v it_o to_o peter_n or_o any_o other_o of_o his_o disciple_n and_o that_o be_v it_o which_o i_o mean_v to_o defend_v in_o he_o and_o no_o other_o soveraintie_n humble_o desire_v pardon_n of_o her_o majesty_n my_o gracious_a sovereign_a lady_n for_o my_o plain_a deal_n in_o that_o which_o so_o christ_n help_v i_o i_o take_v to_o be_v god_n cause_n and_o the_o church_n only_o as_o i_o do_v also_o most_o willing_o submit_v myself_o to_o the_o courteous_a correction_n of_o all_o man_n who_o through_o great_a skill_n and_o perfit_a judgement_n see_v more_o than_o i_o do_v in_o the_o depth_n of_o these_o matter_n whereof_o i_o have_v confer_v farewell_n gentle_a reader_n and_o now_o that_o i_o have_v show_v thou_o my_o deal_n herein_o let_v i_o obtain_v this_o little_a request_n at_o thy_o hand_n that_o thou_o be_v not_o too_o hasty_a in_o give_v thy_o judgement_n before_o thou_o have_v weigh_v all_o thing_n sincere_o and_o upright_o from_o the_o tower_n the_o seven_o of_o july_n john_n rainoldes_n to_o the_o student_n of_o the_o english_a seminary_n at_o rome_n and_o rheims_n brethren_n my_o heart_n desire_n &_o prayer_n unto_o god_n for_o israel_n be_v that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v for_o that_o which_o s._n ●_o paul_n write_v to_o the_o roman_n touch_v the_o israelite_n 9.3_o his_o brethren_n and_o kinsman_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n as_o be_v of_o one_o nation_n with_o he_o that_o must_v i_o protest_v to_o you_o brethren_n yourselves_o my_o kinsman_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n in_o like_a sort_n and_o countryman_n of_o england_n of_o who_o i_o have_v the_o great_a compassion_n and_o pity_n because_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o you_o sin_n of_o ignorance_n rather_o than_o of_o wilfulness_n and_o have_v a_o devotion_n to_o serve_v god_n aright_o though_o not_o the_o right_a way_n wherein_o he_o will_v be_v serve_v that_o i_o may_v just_o say_v the_o same_o unto_o you_o which_o s._n 10.2_o paul_n of_o they_o for_o i_o bear_v you_o record_v that_o you_o have_v the_o zeal_n of_o god_n but_o not_o according_a to_o knowledge_n the_o zeal_n which_o the_o israelite_n have_v be_v of_o 22.3_o the_o law_n the_o knowledge_n which_o they_o want_v be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o it_o for_o they_o expound_v it_o after_o 1_o the_o tradition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o their_o father_n and_o know_v not_o 10.4_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o end_n thereof_o they_o seek_v their_o own_o righteousness_n against_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n the_o zeal_n which_o you_o have_v be_v of_o the_o gospel_n the_o knowledge_n which_o you_o want_v be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o it_o too_o for_o you_o be_v instruct_v to_o understand_v it_o 6._o after_o the_o manner_n of_o your_o father_n whereby_o your_o seducer_n bear_v you_o in_o hand_n that_o 2._o the_o pope_n be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o the_o trade_n of_o popish_a priesthood_n the_o way_n to_o save_v soul_n 6._o the_o sacrifice_n of_o popish_a mass_n the_o sovereign_a sacrifice_n in_o a_o word_n 5._o that_o papistry_n be_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o 5._o the_o faith_n and_o service_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v curse_v and_o damnable_a special_o 4._o the_o oath_n of_o the_o queen_n supremacy_n and_o your_o mind_n be_v take_v so_o with_o these_o opinion_n that_o you_o be_v content_a to_o venture_v as_o far_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o they_o as_o the_o donatist_n do_v who_o love_v their_o error_n better_a than_o their_o life_n great_a zeal_n but_o not_o according_a to_o knowledge_n my_o brethren_n for_o the_o gospel_n teach_v not_o that_o which_o you_o imagine_v your_o father_n be_v abuse_v by_o phariseis_n &_o rabbin_n your_o pope_n have_v usurp_v over_o all_o christian_a state_n your_o priesthood_n be_v impious_a your_o mass_n abomination_n your_o popish_a faith_n heresy_n our_o doctrine_n of_o the_o queen_n supremacy_n &_o oath_n thereto_o our_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n of_o sacrament_n of_o prayer_n agree_v with_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o be_v holy_a which_o thing_n since_o this_o conference_n that_o one_o of_o your_o seminarie-priest_n and_o i_o have_v have_v do_v open_a &_o prove_v peruse_v it_o ●_o beseech_v you_o with_o equity_n and_o judgement_n and_o study_n to_o join_v knowledge_n to_o your_o zeal_n that_o you_o may_v be_v save_v perhaps_o your_o superior_n the_o 9.16_o guide_n who_o seduce_v you_o will_v not_o give_v you_o leave_v to_o read_v it_o and_o peruse_v it_o but_o there_o be_v two_o reason_n which_o shall_v move_v they_o to_o condescend_v thereto_o the_o one_o of_o the_o work_n the_o other_o of_o the_o autour_n the_o work_n be_v a_o conference_n
you_o complain_v i_o know_v you_o may_v have_v more_o book_n if_o you_o will_v have_v such_o as_o be_v best_a for_o you_o to_o read_v but_o you_o will_v have_v such_o as_o may_v nourish_v your_o humour_n from_o read_v of_o the_o which_o they_o who_o restrain_v you_o be_v your_o friend_n if_o a_o man_n do_v surfeit_v of_o variety_n of_o dish_n the_o physician_n do_v well_o to_o diet_n he_o with_o one_o wholesome_a kind_n of_o meat_n perhaps_o it_o be_v better_o for_o some_o of_o we_o who_o read_v all_o sort_n that_o we_o be_v tie_v to_o that_o alone_a &_o suffer_v part_n of_o your_o restraint_n we_o be_v trouble_v about_o many_o thing_n but_o one_o thing_n be_v needful_a many_o please_v the_o fancy_n better_o but_o one_o do_v profit_n more_o the_o mind_n he_o be_v a_o wise_a preacher_n who_o say_v 12._o the_o read_n of_o many_o book_n be_v a_o weariness_n unto_o the_o flesh_n and_o therefore_o exhort_v man_n to_o take_v instruction_n by_o 11._o the_o word_n of_o truth_n the_o word_n of_o the_o wise_a which_o be_v give_v by_o one_o pastor_n even_o by_o jesus_n christ_n 12._o who_o spirit_n do_v speak_v in_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o teach_v his_o church_n the_o truth_n by_o they_o howbeit_o for_o as_o much_o as_o 11._o god_n have_v give_v gift_n to_o man_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n who_o labour_n may_v help_v we_o to_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o that_o one_o pastor_n we_o do_v receive_v thankful_o the_o monument_n of_o their_o labour_n leave_v in_o write_v to_o the_o church_n which_o they_o be_v set_v to_o build_v either_o several_a as_o the_o doctor_n or_o assemble_v as_o the_o counsel_n &_o we_o do_v glad_o read_v they_o as_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o so_o that_o we_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o that_o one_o pastor_n for_o ●4_n god_n do_v give_v he_o the_o spirit_n not_o by_o measure_n the_o rest_n ●_o have_v a_o measure_n of_o grace_n and_o knowledge_n through_o he_o wherefore_o if_o to_o supply_v your_o whatsoever_o want_n you_o will_v have_v the_o book_n of_o doctor_n and_o counsel_n to_o use_v they_o as_o help_v for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o book_n of_o christ_n your_o want_n shall_v be_v supply_v you_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o fear_v disadvantage_n in_o this_o respect_n for_o m._n secretary_n have_v take_v order_n that_o you_o shall_v have_v what_o book_n you_o will_v unless_o you_o will_v such_o as_o can_v be_v get_v hart._n the_o book_n that_o i_o will_v have_v be_v principal_o in_o deed_n the_o father_n and_o the_o counsel_n which_o all_o do_v make_v for_o we_o as_o do_v the_o scripture_n also_o but_o for_o my_o direction_n to_o find_v out_o their_o place_n in_o all_o point_n of_o controversy_n which_o i_o can_v neither_o remember_v ready_o nor_o dare_v to_o trust_v myself_o in_o they_o i_o will_v have_v our_o writer_n which_o in_o the_o several_a point_n whereof_o they_o treat_v have_v cite_v they_o and_o buyld_v themselves_o upon_o they_o in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o supremacy_n method_n doctor_n stapleton_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n eucharist_n doctor_n allen_n of_o the_o worship_v of_o saint_n and_o image_n editi_fw-la doctor_n harpsfield_n who_o book_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o alan_n cope_n &_o bear_v his_o name_n as_o copus_n certain_a letter_n in_o they_o show_v likewise_o for_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o point_n that_o lie_v in_o controversy_n they_o who_o in_o particular_a have_v best_a write_v of_o they_o &_o for_o they_o all_o in_o general_a s._n sent._n thomas_n of_o aquine_n &_o aqu._n father_n roberts_n dictate_v and_o chief_o 1●80_n the_o confession_n that_o torrensis_n a_o other_o father_n of_o the_o society_n of_o jesus_n have_v gather_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n which_o book_n we_o set_v the_o more_o by_o lector_fw-la because_o of_o all_o the_o father_n s_o augustine_n be_v the_o chief_a as_o well_o in_o our_o as_o your_o judgement_n and_o his_o doctrine_n be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n who_o consent_n be_v the_o rule_n whereby_o controversy_n shall_v be_v end_v rainoldes_n these_o you_o shall_v have_v god_n will_v and_o if_o you_o will_v jesuit_n canisius_n too_o because_o he_o be_v so_o full_a of_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o father_n and_o many_o do_v esteem_v he_o high_o but_o this_o i_o must_v request_v you_o to_o look_v on_o the_o originalle_n of_o scripture_n counsel_n father_n which_o they_o do_v allege_v for_o they_o do_v persuade_v you_o that_o all_o do_v make_v for_o you_o but_o they_o abuse_v you_o in_o it_o they_o borrow_v some_o gold_n out_o of_o the_o lord_n treasure_n house_n and_o wine_n out_o of_o the_o doctor_n press_n but_o they_o be_v deceitful_a workman_n they_o do_v corrupt_v their_o gold_n with_o dross_n their_o wine_n with_o worse_a than_o water_n hart._n you_o shall_v find_v it_o hard_a to_o convince_v they_o of_o it_o then_o to_o charge_v they_o with_o it_o rainoldes_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v it_o hard_a to_o make_v proof_n of_o half_a then_o to_o make_v claim_n of_o all_o yet_o you_o shall_v see_v both_o your_o claim_n of_o all_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n to_o be_v more_o confidente_a than_o just_a and_o my_o reproof_n of_o your_o writer_n for_o their_o corrupt_a and_o forge_v of_o they_o as_o plain_o prove_v as_o utter_v if_o you_o have_v eye_n to_o see_v god_n lighten_v your_o eye_n that_o you_o may_v see_v &_o open_v your_o ear_n that_o you_o may_v hear_v and_o geve_v you_o both_o a_o soft_a hart_n and_o understanding_n mind_n that_o you_o may_v be_v able_a wise_o to_o discern_v and_o glad_o to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n when_o you_o shall_v hear_v it_o hart._n i_o trust_v i_o shall_v be_v able_a always_o both_o to_o see_v and_o to_o follow_v the_o truth_n but_o i_o be_o persuade_v you_o will_v be_v never_o able_a to_o show_v that_o that_o be_v the_o truth_n which_o your_o church_n profess_v as_o by_o our_o conference_n i_o hope_v it_o shall_v be_v manifest_v rainoldes_n uuill_a you_o then_o to_o lay_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o conference_n let_v i_o know_v the_o cause_n why_o you_o separate_v yourself_o and_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o prayer_n and_o religion_n hart._n the_o cause_n be_v not_o many_o they_o may_v be_v all_o comprise_v in_o one_o your_o church_n be_v no_o church_n you_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o church_n rainoldes_n how_o prove_v you_o that_o hart._n by_o this_o argument_n the_o church_n be_v a_o company_n of_o christian_a man_n profess_v one_o faith_n under_o one_o head_n you_o profess_v not_o one_o faith_n under_o one_o head_n therefore_o you_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n rainoldes_n what_o be_v that_o one_o faith_n hart._n the_o catholic_a faith_n rainoldes_n who_o be_v that_o one_o head_n hart._n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n rainoldes_n then_o both_o the_o proposition_n of_o which_o you_o frame_v your_o argument_n be_v in_o part_n faulty_a the_o first_o in_o that_o you_o say_v the_o church_n be_v a_o company_n of_o christian_a man_n under_o one_o head_n the_o second_o in_o that_o you_o charge_v we_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o we_o profess_v not_o one_o faith_n for_o we_o do_v profess_v that_o one_o faith_n the_o catholic_a faith_n but_o we_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o that_o one_o head_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n hart._n i_o will_v prove_v the_o point_n of_o both_o my_o proposition_n the_o which_o you_o have_v deny_v first_o that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o her_o head_n next_o that_o the_o faith_n which_o you_o profess_v in_o england_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_a faith_n rainoldes_n you_o will_v say_v somewhat_o for_o they_o but_o you_o will_v never_o prove_v they_o hart._n let_v the_o church_n judge_v for_o the_o first_o thus_o i_o prove_v it_o division_n s._n peter_n be_v head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succeed_v peter_n in_o the_o same_o power_n over_o bishop_n that_o he_o have_v over_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v head_n of_o all_o bishop_n if_o of_o bishop_n then_o by_o consequent_a of_o the_o diocese_n subject_n to_o they_o if_o of_o all_o their_o diocese_n then_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n therefore_o be_v head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ._n rainoldes_n s._n peter_n be_v head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v head_n of_o all_o bishop_n i_o have_v think_v that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n both_o be_v and_o be_v the_o head_n as_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n so_o of_o apostle_n of_o bishop_n of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o it_o for_o the_o church_n be_v his_o
infallible_a the_o counsel_n interpretation_n and_o ●_o these_o mean_n he_o say_v be_v the_o only_a certain_a sure_a infallible_a mean_n of_o understanding_n and_o expound_v the_o scripture_n aright_o as_o for_o other_o mean_n which_o learned_a man_n do_v use_v such_o as_o you_o observe_v out_o of_o s._n austin_n he_o grant_v they_o be_v profitable_a but_o deceitful_a many_o way_n if_o each_o of_o they_o be_v several_o take_v by_o itself_o which_o he_o prove_v in_o particular_a by_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o first_o the_o weigh_v of_o circumstance_n what_o go_v before_o what_o come_v after_o next_o the_o word_n and_o kind_n of_o speech_n use_v in_o the_o scripture_n three_o 10._o the_o conference_n of_o place_n together_o one_o to_o be_v lighten_v by_o a_o other_o four_o 12._o recourse_n to_o the_o fountain_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o hebrew_n text_n wherefore_o though_o i_o acknowledge_v your_o way_n to_o be_v a_o good_a way_n and_o such_o as_o i_o be_o well_o content_a to_o walk_v in_o when_o these_o our_o way_n shall_v lead_v i_o to_o it_o notwithstanding_o since_o it_o be_v 9_o common_a to_o we_o with_o all_o heretic_n yea_o with_o jew_n and_o painim_n who_o do_v all_o confer_v place_n observe_v the_o kind_n of_o speech_n look_v on_o the_o greek_a and_o hebrew_n fountain_n mark_v what_o go_v before_o what_o come_v after_o and_o such_o like_a thing_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v very_o far_o from_o the_o true_a understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n i_o will_v myself_o practice_v it_o when_o i_o shall_v see_v good_a but_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n of_o you_o that_o can_v enforce_v i_o to_o allow_v it_o simple_o rainoldes_n the_o treatise_n of_o your_o doctor_n against_o the_o protestant_n opinion_n be_v like_o the_o army_n of_o antiochus_n prepare_v against_o the_o roman_n very_o great_a and_o huge_a of_o man_n of_o many_o nation_n but_o white_a liver_v soldier_n neither_o so_o strong_a with_o armour_n as_o glister_v with_o gold_n and_o silver_n antiochus_n himself_o be_v amaze_v at_o it_o and_o think_v it_o unuincible_a so_o do_v the_o simple_a fool_n of_o his_o country_n too_o but_o 37._o the_o roman_n contemn_v it_o and_o annib._n annibal_n jest_v at_o it_o the_o name_n of_o protestant_n which_o 10._o he_o use_v taunt_o as_o all_o one_o with_o heretic_n we_o be_v no_o more_o ashamed_a of_o than_o be_v the_o 24.19_o prophet_n and_o 10.42_o apostle_n who_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v honour_v with_o that_o title_n because_o they_o do_v make_v a_o protestation_n of_o their_o faith_n 6._o upon_o the_o like_a occasion_n as_o do_v the_o faithful_a in_o germany_n when_o they_o be_v note_v by_o that_o name_n the_o protestant_n opinion_n i_o have_v already_o show_v to_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o ancient_a protestant_n the_o father_n the_o apostle_n the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o speak_v by_o they_o if_o you_o call_v it_o a_o error_n we_o be_v content_a to_o err_v with_o they_o if_o he_o think_v it_o a_o heresy_n we_o be_v no_o better_a than_o paul_n 26.22_o who_o in_o such_o heresy_n serve_v god_n the_o ground_n which_o 2._o he_o lay_v for_o the_o disproof_n of_o it_o be_v such_o that_o it_o seem_v his_o wit_n and_o he_o have_v make_v a_o fray_n when_o he_o lay_v it_o he_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o not_o by_o scripture_n only_o which_o be_v in_o effect_n as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v the_o church_n must_v be_v teach_v by_o live_a creature_n endue_v with_o reason_n and_o therefore_o not_o by_o man_n only_o for_o as_o a_o live_a creature_n endue_v with_o reason_n and_o a_o man_n be_v all_o one_o which_o every_o child_n know_v by_o the_o principle_n of_o logic_n so_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o scripture_n be_v all_o one_o do_v not_o your_o doctor_n know_v it_o it_o be_v a_o principle_n of_o divinity_n deliver_v by_o s._n austin_n who_o 3._o he_o pretend_v chief_o in_o this_o point_n to_o follow_v hart._n and_o do_v he_o not_o follow_v he_o do_v he_o not_o allege_v s._n augustine_n own_o word_n 2._o in_o a_o doubtful_a place_n of_o scripture_n let_v a_o man_n seek_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o rule_n he_o have_v learn_v of_o plain_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v fetch_v out_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n also_o not_o out_o of_o scripture_n only_o rainoldes_n yes_o he_o do_v allege_v s._n augustine_n word_n in_o deed_n but_o as_o 26.61_o the_o false_a witness_n allege_v christ_n word_n of_o destroy_v the_o temple_n and_o build_v it_o in_o three_o day_n the_o word_n against_o the_o meaning_n which_o trick_n consultis_fw-la the_o law_n note_v as_o a_o abuse_n of_o the_o law_n yet_o be_v it_o common_a with_o your_o doctor_n for_o as_o christ_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o raise_v the_o temple_n by_o the_o temple_n 2.19_o mean_v his_o body_n the_o witness_n do_v wrest_v it_o to_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n so_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v mention_v by_o s._n austin_n as_o teach_v scripture_n only_o your_o doctor_n allege_v it_o as_o teach_v somewhat_o beside_o the_o scripture_n hart._n this_o be_v strange_a that_o s._n austin_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n mean_v no_o more_o than_o by_o the_o plain_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o so_o much_o you_o seem_v to_o say_v in_o effect_n rainoldes_n be_v it_o strange_a yet_o be_v it_o true_a for_o himself_o declare_v that_o to_o be_v his_o meaning_n not_o only_o by_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o whole_a treatise_n wherein_o he_o do_v establish_v the_o scripture_n alone_o for_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o show_v the_o sense_n of_o doubtfull_a place_n by_o the_o plain_a but_o also_o by_o the_o end_n of_o this_o your_o own_o sentence_n which_o stapleton_n in_o allege_v it_o either_o negligent_o pass_v or_o crafty_o suppress_v unless_o the_o fault_n perhaps_o be_v in_o some_o other_o with_o who_o eye_n he_o read_v it_o for_o 2._o after_o these_o word_n let_v he_o seek_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o rule_n he_o have_v learn_v of_o plain_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n it_o follow_v in_o s._n austin_n of_o which_o rule_n we_o have_v sufficient_o entreat_v in_o the_o first_o book_n when_o we_o speak_v of_o thing_n now_o in_o that_o discourse_n to_o which_o he_o refer_v we_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o any_o thing_n as_o teach_v by_o the_o church_n but_o what_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n wherefore_o in_o these_o word_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n he_o mean_v not_o any_o thing_n beside_o the_o scripture_n if_o he_o do_v show_v it_o if_o he_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v it_o hart._n he_o do_v for_o in_o the_o first_o book_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o thing_n he_o show_v that_o ●●_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v comprise_v in_o that_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o express_o set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n rainoldes_n express_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o this_o word_n express_o hart._n i_o mean_v that_o it_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n rainoldes_n what_o not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n hart._n not_o all_o that_o our_o faith_n do_v hold_v of_o the_o trinity_n rainoldes_n god_n forbid_v that_o we_o shall_v hold_v of_o such_o a_o mystery_n more_o than_o he_o teach_v by_o his_o word_n hart._n certain_o s._n austin_n arian_n write_v to_o a_o arian_n who_o deny_v that_o god_n the_o son_n be_v consubstantial_a with_o the_o father_n say_v that_o as_o we_o read_v not_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o father_n ingenitum_fw-la unbegotten_a &_o yet_o it_o be_v defend_v that_o it_o must_v be_v say_v in_o like_a sort_n it_o may_v be_v that_o neither_o homoousion_n consubstantial_a be_v find_v write_v there_o and_o yet_o be_v say_v in_o the_o assertion_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v defend_v and_o again_o 3._o dispute_v against_o maximinus_n a_o bishop_n of_o the_o arian_n give_v i_o testimony_n say_v thou_o where_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v worship_v as_o though_o by_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o do_v read_v we_o understand_v not_o some_o thing_n also_o which_o we_o read_v not_o but_o that_o i_o be_v not_o enforce_v to_o seek_v many_o where_o have_v thou_o read_v god_n the_o father_n unbegotten_a or_o unborn_a and_o yet_o it_o be_v true_a rainoldes_n and_o think_v you_o that_o s._n austin_n mean_v by_o these_o speech_n that_o the_o scripture_n teach_v not_o that_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v god_n the_o son_n be_v of_o one_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n god_n the_o father_n be_v
two_o and_o twentéeth_n as_o they_o number_v it_o for_o where_o it_o shall_v be_v read_v as_o our_o latin_a have_v it_o and_o the_o greek_a also_o they_o have_v pierce_v my_o hand_n and_o my_o foot_n the_o hebrews_n now_o do_v read_v not_o caaru_n that_o be_v they_o have_v pierce_v but_o caari_n that_o be_v as_o a_o lion_n as_o a_o lion_n my_o hand_n and_o my_o foot_n whereby_o a_o notable_a prophecy_n describe_v so_o plain_o the_o manner_n and_o kind_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v take_v out_o of_o our_o hand_n through_o the_o treachery_n of_o the_o jew_n if_o we_o shall_v follow_v the_o hebrew_n text_n as_o it_o be_v now_o but_o it_o be_v so_o manifest_o know_v to_o be_v corrupt_v that_o yourselves_o though_o allow_v the_o hebrew_n as_o authentical_a yet_o follow_v it_o not_o in_o this_o place_n in_o your_o english_a bibles_n rainoldes_n this_o be_v the_o only_a argument_n that_o 6._o lindan_n have_v of_o any_o show_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o jew_n have_v corrupt_v the_o hebrew_n text_n but_o if_o it_o be_v weigh_v with_o a_o even_a balance_n you_o shall_v find_v it_o a_o mere_a cavil_n for_o what_o will_v you_o say_v of_o your_o own_o self_n do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n corrupt_v the_o latin_a text_n in_o the_o three_o of_o genesis_n 3.15_o where_o it_o be_v read_v of_o the_o woman_n she_o shall_v bruise_v thy_o head_n for_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v read_v of_o thewomans_n seed_n he_o shall_v bruise_v thy_o head_n hart._n some_o of_o your_o man_n say_v so_o but_o they_o do_v great_a injury_n to_o the_o church_n therein_o rainoldes_n they_o have_v as_o great_a cause_n at_o least_o if_o not_o great_a to_o say_v this_o of_o romanistes_n as_o you_o the_o other_o of_o the_o jew_n for_o if_o we_o match_v the_o prophecy_n this_o be_v more_o notable_a 9_o which_o be_v corrupt_v in_o your_o latin_n of_o the_o victory_n of_o christ_n over_o satan_n and_o we_o through_o he_o if_o we_o compare_v error_n this_o be_v more_o manifest_a in_o so_o much_o that_o it_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v a_o error_n even_o by_o lindan_n also_o not_o only_o by_o 4._o other_o and_o the_o hebrew_n text_n with_o the_o chaldee_n paraphrase_n and_o the_o greek_a translation_n do_v all_o make_v against_o it_o as_o 6._o the_o divine_n of_o lovan_n grant_v hart._n but_o this_o may_v creep_v in_o by_o some_o humane_a oversight_n or_o negligence_n of_o scrivener_n as_o sundry_a such_o error_n have_v creep_v in_o to_o write_v book_n of_o all_o sort_n even_o in_o the_o best_a copy_n the_o word_n ipsa_fw-la and_o ipse_fw-la in_o which_o the_o variance_n lie_v do_v not_o so_o great_o differ_v but_o that_o a_o man_n may_v easy_o mistake_v the_o one_o for_o the_o other_o rainoldes_n no_o more_o do_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d caaru_n &_o 〈◊〉_d caari_n the_o difference_n be_v as_o small_a wherefore_o if_o the_o one_o may_v be_v a_o oversight_n of_o scrivener_n in_o the_o latin_a as_o you_o say_v and_o true_o why_o may_v not_o the_o other_o be_v likewise_o in_o the_o hebrew_n as_o it_o be_v guess_v by_o 4._o andradius_fw-la and_o that_o it_o be_v so_o it_o be_v declare_v at_o large_a by_o usu._n arias_n montanus_n who_o for_o his_o singular_a knowledge_n and_o judgement_n both_o in_o art_n and_o tongue_n be_v choose_v as_o i_o say_v to_o oversée_v the_o set_n forth_o of_o that_o famous_a bible_n in_o hebrew_n chaldee_n greek_n and_o latin_a which_o be_v print_v at_o antwerp_n with_o the_o approbation_n of_o your_o test._n pope_n and_o doctor_n for_o in_o the_o six_o tome_n of_o that_o work_n he_o show_v that_o when_o the_o jew_n return_v into_o their_o country_n after_o their_o captivity_n of_o seventie_o year_n in_o babylon_n it_o befall_v unto_o they_o partly_o by_o occasion_n of_o their_o long_a trouble_n which_o do_v distract_v their_o mind_n partly_o by_o corruption_n of_o their_o native_a tongue_n which_o be_v grow_v out_o of_o kind_n first_o into_o the_o chaldee_n and_o afterward_o into_o the_o syriake_n that_o they_o neither_o know_v nor_o pronounce_v so_o well_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n write_v as_o the_o manner_n be_v without_o vowel_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o in_o the_o write_n of_o they_o their_o creep_v in_o some_o fault_n either_o through_o injury_n of_o the_o time_n or_o by_o reason_n of_o trouble_n which_o fall_v upon_o the_o people_n or_o by_o negligence_n of_o some_o scrivener_n but_o this_o inconvenience_n be_v meet_v withal_o afterward_o by_o most_o learned_a man_n such_o as_o esdras_n be_v and_o afterward_o gamaliel_n joseus_fw-la eleazar_n and_o other_o of_o great_a name_n who_o provide_v by_o common_a travel_n with_o great_a care_n and_o industry_n that_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o true_a read_n thereof_o shall_v be_v preserve_v most_o sound_a and_o uncorrupt_a and_o from_o these_o man_n or_o from_o their_o instruction_n be_v receive_v and_o poolish_v by_o their_o scholar_n in_o the_o age_n follow_v there_o come_v say_v he_o as_o we_o judge_v that_o most_o profitable_a treasure_n which_o be_v call_v fuere_fw-la masore_v that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o delivery_n because_o it_o do_v deliver_v abundant_o and_o faithful_o all_o the_o diverse_a reading_n that_o ever_o be_v of_o the_o hebrew_n bibles_n wherein_o there_o appear_v a_o evident_a token_n of_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o sacred_a book_n of_o scripture_n whole_a and_o sound_v that_o the_o masóer_v have_v be_v keep_v till_o our_o time_n these_o many_o hundred_o year_n with_o such_o care_n and_o diligence_n that_o unquam_fw-la in_o sundry_a copy_n of_o it_o which_o have_v be_v write_v no_o difference_n be_v ever_o find_v and_o it_o have_v be_v add_v in_o all_o the_o write_v bibles_n that_o be_v in_o europe_n africa_n or_o asia_n each_o of_o they_o agre_v thorough_o therein_o with_o other_o even_o as_o it_o be_v print_v in_o the_o venice-bibles_a to_o the_o great_a wonder_n of_o they_o who_o read_v it_o now_o in_o this_o masore_v make_v so_o long_o ago_o so_o diligent_o write_v so_o faithful_o keep_v in_o so_o many_o country_n through_o so_o many_o age_n as_o arias_n montanus_n witness_v the_o jew_n themselves_o acknowledge_v by_o their_o own_o testimony_n that_o where_o in_o common_a book_n it_o be_v read_v caari_n in_o certain_a it_o be_v caaru_n wherefore_o if_o some_o jewish_a scrivener_n who_o write_v out_o book_n deprave_a it_o of_o malice_n and_o spite_n which_o may_v be_v though_o they_o who_o accuse_v they_o do_v bring_v neither_o autour_fw-fr nor_o time_n nor_o any_o sure_a argument_n to_o prove_v it_o but_o if_o some_o deprave_a it_o yet_o see_v their_o masôreth_n do_v note_v the_o diverse_a read_n and_o in_o part_n do_v justify_v that_o which_o be_v the_o true_a it_o be_v hard_o to_o charge_v they_o as_o you_o do_v with_o corrupt_v of_o the_o hebrew_n text_n much_o hard_o then_o if_o we_o shall_v charge_v your_o romish_a church_n with_o corrupt_v of_o the_o latin_a where_o you_o read_v ipsa_fw-la in_o steed_n of_o ipse_fw-la not_o he_o but_o she_o shall_v bruise_v thy_o head_n hart._n not_o so_o for_o we_o have_v keep_v also_o that_o read_n ipse_fw-la even_o in_o our_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n for_o plantino_fw-it the_o divine_n of_o lovan_n do_v note_n that_o it_o be_v find_v in_o two_o write_v copy_n and_o we_o do_v confess_v it_o to_o be_v more_o agreeable_a both_o to_o the_o hebrew_n text_n and_o the_o chaldee_n paraphrase_n &_o the_o greek_a translation_n yea_o that_o s._n jerom_n read_v it_o so_o too_o as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o notation_n of_o liccutiato_n franciscus_n lucas_n to_o which_o our_o latin_a bibles_n set_v forth_o by_o the_o divine_n of_o lovan_n do_v refer_v you_o rainoldes_n yet_o franciscus_n lucas_n do_v wrangle_v still_o about_o it_o and_o say_v that_o all_o the_o latin_a copy_n which_o they_o can_v find_v do_v read_v it_o ipsa_fw-la and_o of_o the_o two_o which_o you_o mention_v he_o doubt_v whether_o one_o do_v follow_v the_o latin_a or_o the_o hebrew_n and_o he_o make_v show_v of_o proof_n that_o the_o hebrew_n may_v well_o agree_v to_o the_o latin_a with_o a_o little_a hammer_v of_o it_o yea_o and_o that_o be_v more_o as_o in_o all_o the_o bibles_n that_o i_o have_v see_v of_o you_o the_o latin_n have_v ipsa_fw-la not_o ipse_fw-la she_o not_o he_o though_o allege_v your_o great_a friend_n have_v wish_v you_o forshame_n to_o mend_v it_o so_o in_o a_o hebrew_n text_n of_o the_o famous_a est_fw-la bible_n of_o king_n philip_n which_o but_o now_o i_o mention_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d he_o be_v alter_v according_a to_o the_o latin_a 〈◊〉_d she_o and_o that_o not_o of_o error_n but_o of_o purpose_n as_o it_o be_v witness_v by_o sit_v franciscus_n lucas_n which_o be_v great_a boldness_n in_o corrupt_v the_o hebrew_n they_o you_o can_v
the_o emperor_n this_o witness_n and_o lay_v the_o blame_n of_o those_o monster_n upon_o the_o roman_n themselves_o causa_fw-la the_o noble_a man_n say_v he_o of_o rome_n to_o advance_v their_o own_o private_a power_n corrupt_v they_o to_o who_o the_o pope_n election_n belong_v and_o thereby_o fill_v the_o church_n almost_o two_o hundred_o year_n together_o with_o grievous_a sedition_n and_o shameful_a evil_n and_o disorder_n these_o be_v the_o marquis_n albert_n and_o alberike_n his_o son_n a_o consul_n the_o earl_n of_o thusculum_fw-la &_o they_o who_o be_v of_o their_o kin_n or_o by_o their_o mean_n have_v grow_v to_o wealth_n who_o either_o bribe_v the_o people_n and_o clergy_n with_o money_n or_o spoil_v they_o of_o the_o ancient_a liberty_n of_o the_o election_n by_o whatsoever_o other_o mean_n provexerunt_fw-la prefer_v at_o their_o lust_n their_o kinsman_n or_o friend_n man_n common_o nothing_o like_o to_o the_o former_a pope_n in_o holiness_n and_o good_a order_n for_o the_o repress_v of_o who_o outrage_n pope_n leo_n the_o eight_o reviue_v the_o law_n which_o have_v be_v make_v by_o adrian_n the_o first_o and_o repeal_v by_o the_o three_o that_o no_o pope_n elect_v shall_v undertake_v the_o popedom_n without_o the_o emperor_n consent_n which_o law_n be_v take_v away_o by_o occasion_n that_o the_o room_n be_v seek_v ambitious_o in_o the_o city_n and_o purchase_v by_o bribe_n the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v put_v again_o in_o great_a danger_n studiis_fw-la through_o the_o private_a lust_n of_o the_o same_o faction_n to_o provide_v therefore_o a_o remedy_n for_o these_o thing_n henry_n the_o emperor_n come_v into_o italy_n as_o hereupon_o sigonius_n show_v and_o so_o you_o may_v see_v the_o lewdness_n of_o genebrard_n that_o shameless_a parasite_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o without_o all_o reverence_n both_o of_o god_n and_o man_n do_v rail_v lie_v and_o falsify_v story_n to_o deface_v the_o emperor_n and_o cross_v the_o writer_n of_o the_o century_n for_o he_o say_v that_o the_o emperor_n 9_o do_v as_o wild_a boar_n eat_v up_o the_o vineyard_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o story_n say_v that_o they_o deliver_v it_o from_o wild_a boar_n the_o story_n say_v that_o the_o monster_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v choose_v by_o the_o roman_n themselves_o 11._o he_o say_v that_o they_o come_v in_o by_o intrusion_n of_o the_o emperor_n the_o story_n say_v that_o the_o emperor_n who_o hunt_v out_o those_o beast_n be_v virtuous_a and_o lawful_a prince_n he_o call_v 11._o they_o tyrant_n nor_o only_o they_o but_o also_o 16._o many_o good_a emperor_n more_o who_o meddle_v with_o the_o pope_n election_n final_o the_o story_n say_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v allow_v by_o pope_n and_o counsel_n to_o do_v it_o he_o say_v 11._o that_o they_o usurp_v it_o by_o the_o right_n of_o herode_fw-la and_o yet_o himself_o record_v and_o that_o in_o the_o same_o chronicle_n too_o that_o 8._o pope_n adrian_n with_o a_o council_n 10._o pope_n leo_n with_o a_o council_n 11._o pope_n clemens_n with_o a_o council_n do_v grant_v it_o unto_o charles_n otho_n and_o henry_n the_o emperor_n i_o have_v read_v of_o a_o envious_a man_n who_o be_v content_a to_o lose_v one_o of_o his_o own_o eye_n that_o a_o other_o may_v lose_v both_o genebrard_n be_v go_v far_a for_o he_o be_v content_a to_o put_v out_o both_o his_o own_o eye_n that_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o century_n may_v put_v out_o one_o of_o they_o that_o they_o may_v ●●●topere_fw-la acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o have_v praise_v the_o german_a emperor_n unjust_o he_o grant_v both_o that_o pope_n with_o counsel_n have_v err_v and_o that_o their_o succession_n wa●_n break_v off_o a_o great_a while_n wherein_o if_o you_o say_v the_o same_o with_o he_o m._n hart_n i_o be_o glad_a of_o it_o but_o your_o fellow_n i_o fear_v i_o will_v not_o allow_v that_o you_o say_v if_o you_o allow_v that_o he_o say_v hart._n no_o body_n say_v that_o the_o succession_n of_o pope_n be_v break_v off_o nor_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v and_o counsel_n for_o as_o genebrard_n take_v it_o leo_n the_o eight_o and_o clemens_n the_o second_o be_v not_o pope_n rainoldes_n but_o adrian_n the_o first_o be_v as_o genebrard_n take_v it_o and_o that_o one_o of_o the_o best_a pope_n yet_o he_o do_v grant_v as_o much_o to_o charles_n the_o emperor_n as_o leo_n do_v to_o otho_n as_o clemens_n do_v to_o henry_n and_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o they_o be_v not_o pope_n who_o yet_o the_o roman_a clergy_n with_o many_o bishop_n choose_v then_o the_o pope_n succession_n which_o be_v almost_o the_o only_a eye_n of_o your_o cyclops_n will_v be_v clean_o put_v out_o by_o the_o devise_n of_o this_o 9_o nobody_o and_o how_o shall_v the_o writing_n of_o our_o countryman_n 7._o sander_n &_o 43._o bristol_n and_o church_n rishton_n and_o such_o other_o do_v then_o who_o make_v the_o pope_n succession_n the_o chief_a bulwark_n of_o your_o church_n a_o certain_a mark_n that_o never_o fail_v and_o what_o will_v princip_n nobody_o himself_o say_v to_o the_o three_o book_n of_o his_o chronicle_n where_o he_o write_v that_o d●taturam_fw-la peter_n succession_n shall_v endure_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v this_o true_a when_o he_o write_v the_o three_o book_n and_o be_v it_o false_a when_o he_o write_v the_o four_o hart._n d._n genebrard_n who_o you_o shall_v prove_v to_o be_v somebody_o ere_o you_o have_v do_v though_o you_o be_v flout_v he_o with_o nobody_o do_v show_v by_o the_o one_o place_n his_o meaning_n in_o the_o other_o for_o since_o he_o write_v that_o peter_n succession_n shall_v endure_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v plain_a he_o mean_v not_o that_o it_o be_v break_v of_o at_o any_o time_n absolute_o and_o simple_o wherefore_o in_o that_o he_o add_v about_o the_o fifty_o pope_n 11._o that_o successio_fw-la the_o lawful_a succession_n be_v disorder_v then_o he_o mean_v that_o it_o be_v break_v but_o in_o some_o sort_n as_o it_o be_v or_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n rather_o bruise_v then_o break_v not_o interrupt_v but_o disturb_v for_o neither_o genebrard_n say_v nor_o any_o catholic_a writer_n else_o but_o that_o the_o succession_n of_o pope_n have_v continue_v and_o shall_v unto_o the_o end_n rainoldes_n then_o i_o mistake_v his_o meaning_n touch_v the_o succession_n and_o you_o touch_v the_o pope_n for_o i_o think_v that_o you_o have_v deny_v that_o they_o be_v pope_n who_o be_v thief_n and_o robber_n now_o i_o perceive_v you_o mean_v not_o absolute_o and_o simple_o that_o they_o be_v not_o pope_n but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o pope_n after_o a_o kind_n of_o sort_n they_o be_v crack_v pope_n as_o you_o will_v say_v and_o not_o sound_a or_o perhaps_o in_o truth_n rather_o craze_a then_o crack_v yet_o the_o reason_n which_o you_o bring_v why_o they_o be_v not_o pope_n do_v stand_v in_o force_n against_o they_o still_o for_o it_o be_v true_a as_o you_o say_v that_o they_o do_v not_o succeed_v lawful_o wherefore_o either_o lawful_a succession_n be_v not_o necessary_a unto_o your_o succession_n or_o the_o craze_a pope_n be_v no_o pope_n at_o al._n they_o do_v succeed_v simon_n but_o 1●_n simon_n the_o sorcerer_n and_o not_o simon_n peter_n howbeit_o you_o must_v count_v they_o simon_n peter_n successor_n for_o your_o succession_n sake_n else_o you_o spoil_v your_o church_n of_o her_o gay_a ornament_n through_o which_o the_o unskilful_a be_v most_o enamour_v of_o she_o beside_o that_o neither_o will_v it_o help_v your_o cause_n a_o whit_n in_o trial_n of_o the_o issue_n for_o since_o the_o pope_n have_v overmaistre_v the_o emperor_n and_o thrust_v from_o his_o election_n first_o they_o than_o the_o people_n afterward_o the_o clergy_n &_o 1._o bring_v it_o to_o a_o few_o cardinal_n there_o have_v be_v as_o monstrous_a pope_n as_o be_v before_o still_o i_o except_o chap_a john_n and_o have_v come_v in_o as_o unlawful_o hart._n there_o be_v many_o tumult_n and_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n chief_o through_o the_o emperor_n mean_n before_o that_o the_o matter_n can_v be_v bring_v about_o to_o that_o perfection_n and_o ripeness_n which_o it_o be_v now_o at_o but_o thing_n begin_v to_o mend_v from_o that_o time_n of_o disorder_n for_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o leo_n the_o nine_o and_o the_o pope_n follow_v that_o usurpation_n be_v take_v from_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o four_o although_o with_o great_a stir_n and_o so_o be_v the_o see_v apostolic_a of_o rome_n restore_v to_o her_o ancient_a brightness_n and_o beauty_n whereof_o our_o own_o day_n have_v see_v the_o proof_n and_o trial_n in_o many_o good_a pope_n elect_v lawful_o no_o doubt_n pius_n the_o four_o pius_n the_o five_o and_o he_o who_o reign_v now_o gregory_n the_o
of_o rome_n avouch_v in_o his_o nomocanon_n about_o the_o year_n eight_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o rainoldes_n nay_o no_o more_o of_o photius_n for_o it_o be_v not_o he_o as_o i_o have_v show_v who_o say_v it_o but_o balsamon_n who_o comment_v on_o he_o and_o balsamon_n be_v late_a by_o three_o hundred_o year_n hart._n yet_o he_o be_v a_o grecian_a too_o and_o a_o enemy_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o not_o likely_a to_o vouch_v it_o if_o it_o be_v not_o true_a rainoldes_n but_o genebrard_n have_v grant_v that_o to_o be_v false_a which_o he_o vouch_v for_o he_o say_v that_o constantine_n do_v give_v to_o pope_n sylvester_n the_o province_n and_o place_n and_o fortress_n of_o all_o italy_n or_o of_o the_o western_a country_n and_o not_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n only_o neither_o do_v he_o vouch_v this_o in_o respect_n of_o rome_n but_o of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v to_o enjoy_v the_o privilege_n of_o rome_n 1._o by_o a_o law_n y●_z photius_n rehearse_v in_o his_o nomocanon_n now_o if_o you_o will_v know_v the_o privilege_n of_o rome_n say_v balsamon_n they_o be_v enroll_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o constantine_n donation_n make_v to_o pope_n sylvester_n so_o that_o it_o be_v for_o love_n to_o the_o patriarch_n see_v of_o constantinople_n not_o to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n that_o he_o avouch_v it_o that_o as_o rome_n may_v thereby_o claim_v all_o the_o west_n so_o constantinople_n may_v get_v all_o the_o east_n wherefore_o that_o circumstance_n that_o balsamon_n be_v a_o enemy_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n do_v nothing_o help_v the_o credit_n of_o constantine_n donation_n neither_o do_v s._n isidore_n make_v much_o more_o for_o it_o as_o 11._o nauclerus_fw-la cit_v he_o for_o as_o he_o cit_v he_o he_o give_v he_o a_o touch_n withal_o to_o overthrow_v he_o there_o be_v say_v nauclerus_fw-la no_o mention_n of_o constantine_n donation_n in_o any_o autour_n but_o in_o the_o book_n of_o decree_n and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o florence_n antoninus_n affirm_v in_o his_o chronicle_n that_o in_o ancient_a book_n of_o the_o decreee_v it_o be_v not_o neither_o which_o i_o great_o marvel_v at_o since_o isidore_n report_v plain_o in_o his_o story_n that_o constantine_n do_v yield_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n unto_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o the_o imperial_a ornament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o crown_n the_o apparel_n and_o the_o white_a palfrey_n to_o ride_v upon_o nauclerus_fw-la therefore_o cit_v isidore_n as_o say_v it_o but_o so_o as_o though_o he_o think_v all_o be_v not_o well_o in_o isidore_n since_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o it_o in_o any_o autour_n of_o credit_n or_o antiquity_n i_o show_v you_o 2._o before_o how_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v be_v corrupt_v to_o countenance_v the_o pope_n power_n the_o story_n of_o isidore_n may_v be_v wrought_v in_o like_a sort_n to_o countenance_v the_o pope_n pomp_n his_o triple_a crown_n his_o robe_n imperial_a his_o 2._o horse_n of_o estate_n which_o to_o have_v be_v so_o it_o be_v the_o more_o likely_a because_o it_o be_v testify_v by_o 7._o man_n who_o have_v help_n to_o se●ch_v and_o see_v such_o ancient_a evidence_n that_o in_o old_a copy_n of_o isidore_n that_o be_v not_o find_v and_o perhaps_o if_o that_o story_n of_o isidore_n be_v print_v that_o we_o may_v have_v the_o sight_n of_o it_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o find_v s●me_a token_n there_o of_o forgery_n at_o the_o least_o it_o seem_v that_o genebrard_n himself_o suspect_v some_o weakness_n in_o that_o point_n of_o isidore_n and_o therefore_o neither_o cit_v he_o but_o as_o out_o of_o nauclerus_fw-la and_o add_v that_o he_o write_v at_o the_o time_n that_o gregory_n do_v speak_v much_o of_o the_o church_n land_n for_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o the_o policy_n of_o genebrard_n he_o mention_v the_o ample_a land_n and_o possession_n which_o the_o church_n have_v far_o and_o wide_o through_o the_o west_n in_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o man_n may_v conceive_v thereof_o that_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v part_n of_o those_o land_n since_o isidore_n who_o write_v at_o the_o same_o time_n report_v that_o it_o be_v give_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o this_o observation_n which_o he_o make_v to_o strenghthen_v his_o autours_n report_n do_v most_o of_o all_o weaken_v it_o for_o neither_o do_v gregory_n name_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n as_o part_v of_o those_o land_n which_o in_o his_o epistle_n he_o show_v that_o the_o church_n have_v through_o the_o west_n hart._n but_o he_o do_v by_o your_o leave_n for_o in_o the_o five_o book_n and_o the_o twelve_o epistle_n we_o make_v say_v he_o montanus_n and_o thomas_n efficimas_fw-la freeman_n and_o citizen_n of_o rome_n whereby_o he_o declare_v that_o tert_n rome_n be_v of_o the_o pope_n dominion_n and_o right_n as_o genebrard_n conclude_v of_o it_o rainoldes_n genebrard_n object_v ignorance_n of_o antiquity_n to_o the_o centurie-writer_n ●uris_fw-la but_o in_o bring_v this_o to_o convince_v their_o ignorance_n he_o bewray_v his_o own_o for_o thomas_n and_o montanus_n who_o gregory_n make_v freeman_n and_o citizen_n of_o rome_n be_v his_o ecclesiae_fw-la slave_n or_o bondman_n now_o among_o the_o roman_n any_o man_n may_v lawful_o make_v his_o bond_n man_n free_a and_o who_o he_o make_v free_a they_o he_o make_v citizen_n as_o by_o 4._o their_o ancient_a law_n so_o by_o tollend_v justinian_o who_o live_v before_o gregory_n time_n and_o libertinorum_fw-la reviue_v it_o wherefore_o the_o enfranchise_n of_o thomas_n and_o montanus_n prove_v not_o that_o rome_n be_v of_o the_o pope_n dominion_n more_o the●_n of_o any_o other_o roman_n and_o so_o the_o circumstance_n of_o gregory_n time_n and_o testimony_n which_o genebrard_n will_v strengthen_v his_o tale_n with_o do_v weaken_v it_o for_o neither_o be_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n name_v by_o gregory_n among_o the_o church_n land_n as_o i_o be_v about_o to_o say_v and_o at_o the_o very_a time_n that_o gregory_n be_v pope_n the_o emperor_n hold_v the_o city_n &_o govern_v it_o as_o they_o be_v wont_a by_o a_o 40._o lord_n deputie_n then_o hitherto_o his_o witness_n of_o constantine_n donation_n do_v bring_v it_o small_a comfort_n do_v the_o rest_n say_v more_o for_o it_o hart._n nicephorus_n say_v in_o the_o seven_o book_n the_o nine_o and_o fourti_v chapter_n constantine_n do_v consecrate_v and_o give_v unto_o christ_n the_o palace_n of_o lateran_n which_o thing_n s._n jerom_n also_o have_v touch_v before_o he_o in_o a_o epistle_n to_o oceanus_n and_o experience_n prove_v it_o even_o till_o this_o day_n while_o that_o be_v the_o chief_a see_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n rainoldes_n i_o perceive_v it_o be_v either_o a_o fox_n or_o a_o ferne-bush_n that_o genebrard_n espy_v he_o think_v he_o have_v see_v the_o whole_a city_n of_o rome_n give_v by_o constantine_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o now_o he_o have_v find_v that_o constantine_n do_v turn_v his_o palace_n into_o a_o church_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v teach_v there_o and_o christian_n come_v together_o to_o pray_v and_o serve_v god_n for_o this_o be_v all_o that_o oceanum_n jerom_n and_o 49._o nicephorus_n say_v hart._n but_o nicephorus_n say_v far_a in_o the_o six_o and_o forty_o chapter_n that_o constantine_n endow_v all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o bishoprike_v out_o of_o his_o treasury_n according_a to_o the_o state_n and_o worthiness_n of_o they_o therefore_o he_o endow_v much_o more_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o of_o eugubium_n and_o so_o forth_o rainoldes_n nicephorus_n say_v that_o constantine_n do_v give_v through_o all_o province_n some_o part_n of_o the_o public_a revenue_n to_o the_o church_n but_o not_o that_o he_o do_v give_v according_a to_o the_o state_n and_o worthiness_n of_o each_o of_o they_o that_o genebrard_n do_v add_v to_o keep_v his_o hand_n in_o ure_n howbeit_o if_o nicephorus_n have_v say_v that_o he_o endow_v they_o according_a to_o their_o state_n and_o worthiness_n and_o therefore_o more_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o of_o eugubium_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o donation_n prove_v by_o nicephorus_n hart._n but_o read_v he_o also_o in_o the_o eight_o book_n the_o three_o and_o four_o chapter_n &_o in_o the_o ten_o book_n the_o five_o chapter_n rainoldes_n and_o there_o shall_v you_o find_v as_o much_o as_o in_o the_o former_a hart._n iuo_o in_o his_o pannomia_fw-la about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n eleven_o hundred_o and_o ten_o do_v ●ite_o certain_a thing_n out_o of_o the_o charter_n of_o the_o privilege_n of_o constantine_n donation_n gratian_n about_o the_o year_n eleven_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o bartolomaeus_n picernus_n and_o many_o mo_z do_v bring_v forth_o either_o all_o or_o part_n of_o it_o rainoldes_n picernus_n what_o a_o autour_fw-fr be_v he_o to_o prove_v it_o a_o hungry_a companion_n who_o live_v
and_o lose_v give_v peter_n as_o though_o after_o peter_n it_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o pope_n denys_n say_v the_o contrary_a that_o it_o be_v common_a to_o all_o bishop_n whereby_o you_o may_v perceive_v beside_o that_o if_o the_o title_n which_o he_o give_v peter_n do_v prove_v his_o supremacy_n though_o 3._o i_o have_v show_v it_o do_v not_o but_o if_o it_o do_v yet_o your_o common_a reason_n from_o peter_n supremacy_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v jointlesse_a for_o he_o who_o call_v peter_n chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n yet_o make_v bishop_n equal_a and_o give_v rome_n no_o great_a privilege_n than_o antioch_n or_o jerusalem_n but_o to_o knit_v up_o that_o which_o bring_v we_o unto_o this_o of_o denys_n you_o see_v that_o your_o rhemists_n tale_n of_o the_o assumption_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n yet_o they_o do_v believe_v it_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o father_n that_o i_o may_v doubt_v just_o whether_o you_o will_v believe_v the_o father_n in_o those_o thing_n in_o which_o they_o be_v convict_v of_o error_n by_o the_o scripture_n hart._n i_o can_v believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v against_o it_o for_o the_o church_n do_v hold_v it_o i_o mean_v the_o catholic_a church_n of_o rome_n rainoldes_n in_o that_o your_o rhemist_n lavish_a too_o for_o though_o the_o lie_a greek_n as_o your_o sanctorum_fw-la molanus_n call_v they_o com●o_fw-la do_v vouch_v it_o very_o bold_o yet_o 146._o the_o latin_a writer_n do_v say_v it_o be_v uncertain_a yea_o the_o very_a 15._o martyrologe_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o s._n mary_n death_n but_o where_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o hide_v her_o body_n ecclesiae_fw-la the_o church_n sobriety_n have_v choose_v rather_o to_o be_v ignorant_a thereof_o religious_o then_o to_o hold_v and_o teach_v apocryphum_fw-la some_o frivolous_a thing_n &_o forge_a how_o much_o the_o more_o shameful_a be_v the_o misdemeanour_n first_o of_o 32._o a_o papist_n who_o say_v that_o it_o be_v certain_a she_o be_v assumpt_v by_o death_n not_o only_o in_o soul_n but_o in_o body_n also_o then_o of_o bre●●ar-roman_a the_o pope_n who_o set_v forth_o his_o new_a portesse_n say_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v uncertain_a be_v put_v out_o where_o this_o be_v leave_v in_o which_o they_o can_v not_o deny_v themselves_o to_o be_v uncertain_a but_o your_o rhemist_n pass_v who_o as_o though_o the_o por●esse_n be_v not_o bold_a enough_o in_o allege_v damascene_fw-la body_n though_o it_o mend_v his_o tale_n with_o more_o than_o one_o lie_n they_o take_v that_o which_o their_o portesse_n do_v tell_v they_o lie_v and_o all_o and_o father_n it_o upon_o s._n denys_n that_o it_o may_v have_v the_o great_a credit_n hart._n our_o rhemist_n will_v render_v good_a account_n i_o doubt_v not_o of_o this_o which_o they_o have_v write_v when_o they_o shall_v hear_v what_o be_v say_v against_o it_o and_o that_o which_o you_o declare_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n concern_v the_o time_n of_o s._n denys_n conversion_n which_o be_v the_o great_a argument_n that_o you_o bring_v yet_o to_o disprove_v the_o story_n avouch_v of_o his_o presence_n at_o the_o departure_n of_o our_o lady_n i_o must_v refer_v to_o they_o for_o i_o myself_o know_v not_o indeed_o how_o to_o accord_v it_o but_o why_o do_v you_o press_v that_o point_n about_o the_o father_n touch_v their_o oversee_n either_o the_o word_n or_o meaning_n or_o consequent_a of_o the_o scripture_n we_o be_v pass_v the_o scripture_n and_o proof_n that_o the_o father_n do_v gather_v out_o of_o they_o rainoldes_n but_o if_o they_o may_v gather_v amiss_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o overshoote_v themselves_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o may_v be_v deceive_v in_o the_o word_n of_o man_n too_o and_o either_o not_o conceive_v well_o or_o not_o remember_v well_o or_o not_o conclude_v well_o of_o it_o which_o happen_v to_o s._n jerom_n in_o that_o same_o point_n that_o i_o reprove_v a_o little_a rather_o in_o eusebius_n for_o philo._n he_o reckon_v philo_n the_o jew_n among_o the_o christian_a ecclesiastical_a writer_n do_v it_o he_o say_v for_o this_o reason_n because_o philo_n write_v a_o book_n touch_v the_o first_o church_n plant_v by_o the_o evangelist_n s._n mark_v in_o alexandria_n have_v praise_v the_o christian_n report_v they_o to_o be_v not_o only_o there_o but_o in_o many_o country_n and_o call_v their_o dwell_a place_n monastery_n whereby_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o church_n of_o believer_n in_o christ_n at_o the_o first_o be_v such_o as_o moonke_n endeavour_n and_o seek_v to_o be_v now_o that_o nothing_o be_v any_o man_n own_o in_o propriety_n none_o be_v rich_a among_o they_o none_o poor_a their_o patrimony_n be_v distribute_v to_o the_o needy_a they_o give_v themselves_o whole_o to_o prayer_n and_o to_o sing_v of_o psalm_n and_o to_o learning_n and_o to_o continency_n of_o life_n such_o as_o s._n 4.32_o luke_n also_o do_v write_v that_o the_o believer_n be_v first_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o this_o book_n of_o philo_n touch_v the_o life_n of_o our_o man_n that_o be_v of_o man_n apostolic_a be_v entitle_v of_o the_o contemplative_a life_n of_o man_n that_o pray_v because_o they_o do_v contemplate_v study_n and_o meditate_v heavenly_a thing_n and_o pray_v to_o god_n always_o thus_o far_o s._n jerom._n wherein_o that_o the_o point_n of_o contemplation_n and_o prayer_n be_v somewhat_o like_a in_o they_o who_o philo_n write_v off_o and_o in_o the_o christian_a church_n do_v make_v he_o to_o mistake_v the_o one_o for_o the_o other_o as_o likeness_n they_o say_v be_v the_o mother_n of_o error_n but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o christian_n who_o philo_n mean_v in_o that_o book_n it_o may_v appear_v by_o four_o circumstance_n of_o name_n of_o deed_n of_o time_n and_o of_o place_n for_o they_o of_o who_o philo_n do_v write_v be_v call_v essee_n which_o be_v a_o sect_n of_o jew_n of_o who_o libre_fw-la some_o live_v in_o action_n and_o contemplativa_fw-la some_o in_o contemplation_n the_o christian_n be_v never_o know_v by_o name_n of_o essee_n either_o contemplative_a or_o active_a again_o they_o in_o philo_n do_v leave_v their_o good_n and_o substance_n to_o their_o son_n or_o daughter_n or_o kinsman_n or_o if_o they_o have_v no_o kinsman_n to_o their_o friend_n the_o christian_n give_v they_o to_o the_o poor_a and_o such_o as_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o succour_n moreover_o the_o solemn_a day_n which_o they_o in_o philo_n do_v meet_v together_o public_o to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n teach_v be_v the_o seven_o day_n of_o the_o week_n which_o be_v the_o sabbat_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o saturday_n as_o we_o call_v it_o the_o christian_n be_v wont_a to_o meet_v on_o 16.2_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n that_o be_v antoninum_fw-la sunday_n 1.10_o the_o lord_n day_n as_o s._n john_n term_v it_o final_o they_o who_o philo_n discourse_v of_o do_v live_v in_o no_o town_n or_o city_n but_o without_o in_o garden_n and_o solitary_a place_n the_o christian_n live_v in_o city_n even_o they_o who_o be_v namely_o mention_v by_o jerom_n i_o mean_v the_o christian_a church_n place_v by_o s._n mark_v in_o alexandria_n be_v plant_v 15._o in_o the_o city_n alexandria_n itself_o whereas_o it_o be_v precise_o note_v by_o philo_n that_o his_o jewish_a moonke_n do_v dwell_v 〈◊〉_d about_o it_o and_o 〈◊〉_d without_o it_o wherefore_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o jerom_n do_v mistake_v or_o have_v forget_v the_o word_n of_o philo._n howbeit_o if_o he_o have_v both_o well_o conceive_a and_o remember_v they_o yet_o he_o thereof_o infer_v amiss_o that_o the_o moonke_n in_o his_o time_n be_v such_o as_o s._n luke_n do_v write_v that_o the_o believer_n be_v first_o at_o jerusalem_n for_o the_o believer_n at_o jerusalem_n may_v keep_v their_o own_o if_o they_o list_v as_o 5.4_o peter_n say_v to_o ananias_n while_o it_o remain_v pertein_v it_o not_o to_o thou_o and_o when_o it_o be_v sell_v be_v it_o not_o in_o thy_o own_o power_n but_o heliodorum_n jerom_n say_v that_o his_o monk_n may_v not_o have_v propriety_n in_o any_o thing_n of_o their_o own_o beside_o the_o moonke_n of_o jerom_n do_v live_v in_o continency_n the_o beléever_n at_o jerusalem_n have_v wife_n &_o use_v they_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o s._n luke_n show_v though_o by_o the_o way_n to_o note_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o jewish_a moonke_n &_o the_o christian_a who_o else_o will_v be_v too_o like_a dracontium_fw-la some_o of_o the_o christian_a monk_n in_o jeroms_n time_n have_v wife_n &_o do_v beget_v child_n which_o i_o have_v not_o read_v that_o any_o of_o the_o jewish_a do_v last_o of_o all_o the_o moonke_n who_o jerom_o do_v mean_a as_o he_o must_v needs_o by_o philo_n be_v paulin._n moonke_n according_a to_o their_o
father_n that_o have_v not_o be_v abuse_v so_o the_o friar_n who_o 14._o stapleton_n do_v commend_v great_o for_o diligence_n and_o judgement_n inscriptione_n sixtus_n senensis_n have_v write_v a_o discourse_n touch_v the_o false_a entitle_v of_o book_n whence_o it_o come_v and_o how_o to_o find_v it_o out_o therein_o he_o have_v prove_v that_o book_n be_v father_v false_o not_o only_o upon_o austin_n and_o jerom_n who_o i_o name_v but_o also_o upon_o ambrose_n cyprian_n athanasius_n eusebius_n emisenus_n junilius_n cyrill_n eucherius_n arnobius_n yea_o thomas_n of_o aquine_n too_o with_o this_o discourse_n he_o close_v up_o the_o former_a volume_n of_o 4._o his_o holy_a library_n in_o which_o he_o have_v show_v that_o clemens_n abdias_n origen_n chrysostome_n hippolytus_n &_o many_o mo_z have_v have_v their_o name_n deface_v with_o the_o same_o injury_n hart._n there_o be_v many_o book_n entitle_v to_o the_o father_n false_o we_o confess_v i_o will_v not_o bring_v they_o in_o to_o witness_v against_o you_o or_o if_o i_o do_v you_o may_v refuse_v they_o lawful_o rainoldes_n then_o you_o will_v not_o bring_v in_o 1._o the_o story_n of_o abdias_n to_o prove_v that_o peter_n give_v the_o whole_a power_n to_o clemens_n which_o christ_n have_v give_v he_o or_o if_o you_o do_v you_o license_v i_o to_o refuse_v he_o as_o free_o as_o 4._o i_o refuse_v his_o cousin_n clemens_n in_o the_o same_o point_n neither_o will_v you_o bring_v 106._o arnobius_n on_o the_o psalm_n to_o prove_v that_o who_o so_o go_v out_o of_o peter_n church_n shall_v perish_v as_o do_v 15._o stapleton_n or_o if_o you_o do_v you_o license_v i_o to_o refuse_v he_o as_o not_o the_o man_n who_o stapleton_n will_v have_v he_o take_v for_o hart._n you_o may_v refuse_v abdias_n for_o pope_n paul_n the_o four_o reject_v he_o among_o the_o book_n which_o he_o condemn_v as_o 2._o sixtus_n record_v but_o arnobius_n be_v a_o ancient_a writer_n indeed_o &_o more_o worthy_a of_o credit_n rainoldes_n more_o worthy_a of_o credit_n than_o abdias_n i_o grant_v but_o he_o be_v not_o that_o scriptor_n writer_n most_o ancient_a who_o stapleton_n report_v he_o to_o be_v for_o eccl_n the_o most_o ancient_a arnobius_n be_v elder_a as_o 4._o sixtus_n also_o note_v then_o that_o he_o may_v hear_v of_o 5._o the_o heresy_n of_o photinus_n whereas_o 109._o this_o arnobius_n who_o write_v on_o the_o psalm_n do_v mention_n photinus_n and_o write_v by_o name_n against_o his_o heresy_n hart._n will_v you_o stand_v then_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o sixtus_n which_o be_v the_o right_n and_o natural_a graffe_n of_o the_o father_n and_o which_o be_v bastard_n slip_v rainoldes_n no._n for_o though_o sixtus_n do_v see_v many_o thing_n yet_o he_o see_v not_o all_o and_o other_o may_v see_v that_o which_o sixtus_n oversee_v as_o for_o example_n there_o be_v two_o book_n touch_v the_o martyrdom_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o linus_n the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n these_o do_v linus_n sixtus_n judge_v to_o have_v indeed_o be_v write_v by_o that_o ancient_a linus_n as_o paulum_fw-la faber_n also_o do_v before_o he_o but_o 2._o claudius_n espencaeus_fw-la do_v marvel_v that_o faber_n a_o learned_a man_n and_o witty_a can_v be_v so_o persuade_v since_o peter_n in_o that_o story_n be_v make_v to_o withdraw_v the_o roman_a wife_n &_o matron_n from_o their_o husband_n bed_n under_o pretence_n of_o chastity_n which_o unchristian_a doctrine_n repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n neither_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o peter_n shall_v teach_v neither_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o linus_n shall_v belie_v he_o with_o it_o and_o thus_o you_o see_v a_o author_n disallow_v by_o espencaeus_fw-la on_o very_o sound_a reason_n who_o sixtus_n have_v allow_v of_o not_o so_o discrete_o hart._n but_o if_o you_o thus_o allow_v and_o disallow_v who_o you_o listen_v i_o may_v take_v pain_n in_o vain_a for_o when_o i_o shall_v allege_v this_o or_o that_o father_n speak_v most_o express_o for_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n you_o have_v your_o answer_n ready_a that_o he_o be_v overséene_a through_o error_n or_o overbear_v with_o affection_n or_o if_o he_o write_v in_o greek_a he_o be_v mistranslate_v or_o if_o he_o write_v in_o latin_a he_o be_v miss_v write_v or_o misseprint_v or_o if_o none_o of_o these_o will_v serve_v it_o be_v a_o bastard_n false_o father_v on_o he_o and_o whether_o your_o shift_n be_v sufficient_a answer_n yourself_o will_v be_v judge_n hart._n nay_o not_o so_o nether_a for_o what_o soever_o i_o answer_v i_o will_v give_v reason_n of_o it_o and_o whether_o my_o reason_n be_v sufficient_a proof_n i_o will_v permit_v it_o as_o i_o say_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o jury_n that_o be_v of_o all_o indifferent_a man_n who_o have_v skill_n to_o weigh_v the_o reason_n that_o be_v bring_v and_o conscience_n to_o give_v verdict_n according_a unto_o that_o they_o find_v which_o trial_n if_o you_o like_v off_o as_o you_o seem_v to_o do_v then_o bring_v forth_o your_o witness_n and_o let_v we_o hear_v now_o the_o father_n speak_v themselves_o hart._n content_a and_o i_o will_v ●irst_n begin_v with_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n division_n even_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n who_o i_o allege_v chapter_n before_o out_o of_o d._n 15._o stapleton_n namely_o anacletus_fw-la alexander_n the_o first_o pius_fw-la the_o first_o victor_n zepherinus_n marcellus_n eusebius_n melchiade_n julius_n and_o dama●us_n to_o who_o i_o add_v also_o they_o who_o you_o mention_v out_o of_o 8._o melchior_n canus_n to_o weet_v the_o two_o sixti_fw-la with_o eleutherius_fw-la and_o marcus_n for_o though_o some_o of_o they_o maintain_v it_o as_o by_o scripture_n some_o as_o by_o tradition_n yet_o all_o agree_v in_o this_o that_o they_o maintain_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n rainoldes_n in_o deed_n though_o their_o head_n be_v turn_v one_o from_o a_o other_o yet_o their_o tail_n meet_v together_o with_o a_o firebrand_n betwixt_o they_o as_o do_v 15.4_o the_o fox_n of_o samson_n but_o samson_n have_v three_o hundred_o fox_n have_v you_o no_o more_o but_o these_o few_o hart._n fox_n do_v you_o call_v those_o holy_a martyr_n and_o bishop_n and_o will_v you_o still_o utter_v such_o blasphemous_a speech_n and_o set_v your_o mouth_n against_o heaven_n rainoldes_n against_o hell_n m._n hart_n and_o not_o against_o heaven_n for_o i_o reverence_v the_o holy_a martyr_n who_o yo●_n name_v but_o fox_n i_o call_v those_o beast_n who_o write_v the_o thing_n that_o stapleton_n and_o canus_n quote_v most_o lewd_o and_o injurious_o to_o the_o martyr_n and_o bishop_n who_o they_o be_v false_o father_v on_o as_o i_o will_v prove_v which_o that_o i_o may_v do_v with_o lesser_a trouble_n all_o in_o one_o i_o will_v you_o bring_v the_o rest_n if_o you_o have_v any_o more_o of_o they_o hart._n more_o why_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n from_o they_o forward_o even_o till_o our_o age_n have_v teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n as_o 4._o canus_n declare_v for_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o innocentius_n the_o first_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n and_o milevis_n by_o leo_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o anastasius_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n of_o vienna_n by_o gelasius_n in_o his_o epistle_n 〈◊〉_d anastasius_n the_o emperor_n and_o in_o the_o decree_n which_o he_o make_v with_o the_o seventie_o bishop_n and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o dardania_n by_o vigilius_n in_o his_o decree_n the_o last_o chapter_n of_o they_o by_o pelagius_n the_o second_o to_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v assemble_v in_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n by_o s._n gregory_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o austin_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o englishman_n and_o by_o many_o other_o pope_n who_o testimony_n be_v rehearse_v in_o the_o decree_n and_o decretal_n in_o the_o twelve_o distinction_n and_o seventeenth_o and_o ninetéenth_n and_o twenty_o and_o one_o and_o twenty_o and_o two_o and_o twenty_o and_o the_o eighti_v distinction_n in_o the_o canon_n beginning_n with_o the_o word_n urbes_fw-la and_o the_o ninety_o six_o distinction_n in_o the_o canon_n bene_n and_o in_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o cause_n the_o first_o question_n throughout_o many_o chapter_n and_o in_o the_o five_o and_o twenty_o cause_n the_o first_o question_n and_o in_o the_o title_n of_o election_n in_o the_o chapter_n beginning_n with_o the_o word_n significasti_fw-la and_o the_o title_n of_o privilege_n the_o chapter_n amiqua_n and_o the_o title_n of_o baptism_n the_o chapter_n maiores_fw-la and_o the_o title_n of_o election_n in_o the_o six_o book_n of_o decretal_n the_o chapter_n fundamenta_fw-la and_o in_o the_o extravagant_n the_o constitution_n v●am_fw-la sanctam_fw-la which_o extravagant_a constitution_n be_v renewe●_n 〈◊〉_d approve_a by_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n under_o leo_n the_o ten_o so_o that_o you_o have_v
say_v this_o or_o that_o against_o a_o man_n you_o must_v prove_v it_o rainoldes_n so_o i_o mind_n to_o do_v and_o that_o by_o demonstration_n out_o of_o the_o sa●e_v book_n of_o 3._o genebrard_n himself_o in_o which_o he_o ●indeth_v this_o fault_n with_o the_o centurie-writer_n for_o about_o what_o year_n of_o christ_n do_v isidore_n die_v how_o do_v genebrard_n reckon_v hart._n in_o the_o year_n six_o hundred_o thirty_o and_o seven_o as_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o vasaeus_n rainoldes_n when_o be_v the_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n under_o agatho_n keep_v what_o say_v he_o of_o that_o hart._n in_o the_o year_n six_o hundred_o four_o score_n and_o one_o or_o two_o or_o there_o about_o rainoldes_n then_o isidore_n be_v dead_a above_o forty_o year_n before_o that_o general_a council_n hart._n he_o be_v but_o what_o of_o that_o rainoldes_n of_o that_o it_o do_v follow_v that_o the_o preface_n write_v in_o isidores_n name_n and_o set_v before_o the_o counsel_n to_o purchase_v credit_n to_o those_o epistle_n be_v a_o counterfeit_n and_o not_o isidores_o for_o in_o that_o preface_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o the_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v against_o bishop_n macarius_n and_o stephanus_n in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n agatho_n &_o constantine_n the_o emperor_n which_o see_v it_o be_v hold_v above_o forty_o year_n after_o isidore_n be_v dead_a by_o genebrards_n own_o confession_n by_o his_o own_o confession_n isidore_n can_v not_o tell_v the_o four_o score_n bishop_n of_o it_o and_o so_o the_o four_o score_n bishop_n which_o turrian_n have_v find_v out_o in_o one_o isidore_n be_v dissolve_v all_o into_o one_o counterfeit_a abuse_v both_o the_o name_n of_o isidore_n and_o four_o score_n bishop_n hart._n 27._o igmarus_fw-la who_o be_v archbishop_n of_o rheims_n in_o the_o time_n of_o lewes_n son_n to_o charles_n about_o seven_o hundred_o year_n since_o do_v think_v that_o work_n to_o be_v s._n isidores_n and_o so_o he_o cit_v it_o rainoldes_n why_o mention_v you_o that_o be_v you_o dispose_v to_o prove_v that_o some_o have_v be_v deceive_v and_o think_v he_o isidore_n who_o be_v not_o hart._n no_o but_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o work_n be_v isidores_o as_o father_n 25._o turrian_n do_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o igmarus_fw-la rainoldes_n ignarus_fw-la can_v not_o prove_v that_o he_o must_v be_v content_a to_o be_v deceive_v in_o some_o what_o as_o well_o as_o his_o ancestor_n for_o it_o be_v too_o clear_a by_o the_o episcopor_fw-la counsel_n themselves_o that_o isidore_n do_v die_v about_o the_o time_n that_o we_o agree_v of_o and_o therefore_o no_o help_n but_o it_o must_v be_v a_o other_o who_o write_v that_o preface_n in_o his_o name_n which_o make_v i_o so_o much_o the_o more_o to_o suspect_v that_o the_o epistle_n be_v counterfeit_a since_o i_o find_v that_o a_o father_n be_v counterfeit_v to_o get_v they_o credit_n and_o sure_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o about_o the_o time_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a when_o the_o western_a church_n do_v commonly-fetch_a book_n from_o the_o roman_a library_n some_o groom_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o have_v a_o eye_n to_o the_o almes-box_n convey_v this_o pamphlet_n in_o among_o they_o and_o well_o mean_v man_n in_o france_n and_o other_o country_n receive_v it_o as_o a_o worthy_a work_n compile_v by_o s._n isidore_n and_o come_v from_o the_o see_v apostolic_a but_o say_v what_o may_v be_v say_v for_o the_o silence_n of_o old_a witness_n which_o be_v urge_v and_o just_o as_o a_o probable_a conjecture_n that_o those_o epistle_n be_v not_o extant_a in_o their_o day_n the_o matter_n that_o be_v handle_v and_o debate_v in_o they_o the_o scripture_n allege_v the_o story_n record_v the_o ceremony_n mention_v the_o time_n and_o date_n assign_v be_v not_o conjecture_n probable_a but_o most_o certain_a proof_n that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v write_v by_o those_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o name_n they_o bear_v there_o be_v a_o book_n entitle_v to_o the_o poet_n 1479._o ovid_n touch_v a_o old_a woman_n have_v you_o ever_o see_v it_o hart._n what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o purpose_n do_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o pope_n epistle_n rainoldes_n no_o but_o their_o epistle_n be_v like_a to_o that_o book_n in_o sundry_a respect_n it_o be_v ancient_a it_o be_v print_v above_o a_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o he_o who_o set_v it_o forth_o say_v that_o ovid_n write_v it_o in_o his_o old_a age_n and_o will_v it_o to_o be_v lay_v up_o in_o his_o grave_n with_o he_o in_o the_o which_o grave_n it_o be_v find_v at_o length_n by_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o country_n who_o send_v it_o to_o constantinople_n and_o the_o emperor_n give_v it_o to_o leo_n his_o principal_a notary_n who_o do_v publish_v it_o a_o smooth_a tale_n to_o make_v man_n believe_v that_o it_o be_v ovid_n of_o who_o though_o it_o savour_v no_o more_o than_o these_o epistle_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o if_o your_o divine_n can_v find_v some_o antic_a verse_n there_o that_o be_v a_o evidence_n for_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n i_o see_v my_o former_a reason_n will_v not_o dissuade_v you_o from_o beléeve_v but_o ovid_n write_v the_o book_n for_o to_o the_o barbarousnes_n and_o baseness_n of_o the_o latin_a and_o style_n if_o i_o shall_v urge_v it_o you_o may_v answer_v that_o ovid_n write_v so_o for_o two_o cause_n that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v vain_a glorious_o give_v and_o that_o his_o repentance_n may_v be_v know_v even_o to_o the_o simple_a to_o the_o silence_n of_o witness_n that_o no_o man_n make_v mention_v of_o it_o among_o his_o work_n you_o may_v answer_v that_o it_o lay_v hide_v in_o his_o grave_n and_o this_o you_o may_v answer_v with_o great_a show_n of_o likelihood_n then_o that_o the_o pope_n epistle_n lay_v hide_v in_o the_o pope_n library_n but_o unto_o the_o matter_n of_o which_o the_o book_n intreat_v and_o thing_n that_o it_o discourse_v on_o no_o shadow_n of_o defence_n can_v be_v make_v with_o any_o reason_n for_o 3._o it_o speak_v in_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n that_o veniae_fw-la god_n shall_v give_v she_o to_o be_v our_o mediatresse_fw-mi and_o concathedrabit_fw-la shall_v assumpt_v she_o into_o heaven_n and_o place_v she_o in_o a_o throne_n with_o he_o yea_o the_o autour_fw-fr virgo_fw-la pray_v to_o she_o which_o be_v point_n of_o doctrine_n that_o be_v not_o hear_v of_o i_o trow_v in_o ovid_n time_n neither_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o ovid_n be_v so_o well_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o can_v 2._o cite_v the_o esau._n law_n of_o moses_n and_o speak_v of_o jacob_n and_o esau_n and_o allude_v to_o vetula_fw-la solomon_n in_o ecclesiastes_n even_o so_o for_o those_o epistle_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n although_o you_o have_v gloss_n to_o shift_v of_o other_o reason_n yet_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o you_o can_v lay_v no_o colour_n on_o the_o content_n and_o substance_n of_o they_o for_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o allege_v and_o such_o point_n be_v teach_v about_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n about_o religion_n about_o rite_n about_o story_n ecclesiastical_a that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a they_o shall_v be_v write_v by_o those_o bishop_n hart._n why_o do_v you_o think_v it_o as_o unlikely_a a_o matter_n that_o they_o shall_v allege_v the_o scripture_n as_o that_o ovid_n shall_v rainoldes_n nay_o i_o do_v think_v it_o or_o rather_o i_o do_v know_v it_o to_o be_v more_o unlikely_a that_o they_o shall_v so_o allege_v the_o scripture_n as_o they_o do_v then_o that_o ovid_n shall_v allude_v to_o solomon_n or_o cite_v moses_n for_o 2._o the_o book_n of_o moses_n ponder_v perhaps_o of_o solomon_n too_o be_v translate_v into_o greek_a by_o the_o seventie_o interpreter_n many_o a_o year_n before_o ovid_n and_o he_o may_v have_v read_v they_o but_o your_o common_a latin_a translation_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n make_v a_o great_a part_n of_o it_o by_o s._n jerom_n out_o of_o the_o hebrew_n whence_o it_o be_v call_v s._n jeroms_n can_v not_o be_v see_v by_o anacletus_fw-la and_o other_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o they_o be_v decease_v before_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o yet_o all_o their_o epistle_n do_v allege_v the_o scripture_n after_o that_o translation_n a_o evident_a token_n that_o the_o writer_n of_o they_o do_v live_v after_o s._n jerom_n yea_o a_o great_a while_n after_o he_o as_o may_v be_v deem_v probable_o for_o the_o common_a latin_a translation_n which_o the_o ancient_a latin_a father_n use_v be_v make_v out_o of_o the_o greek_a of_o the_o seventie_o interpreter_n tertullian_n cyprian_n hilary_n ambrose_n and_o other_o of_o the_o same_o age_n show_v it_o in_o all_o their_o writing_n nether_a be_v that_o old_a translation_n forsake_v straight_o way_n as_o soon_o as_o jerom_o have_v set_v forth_o his_o
possess_v any_o they_o bear_v not_o themselves_o as_o lord_n of_o the_o whole_a county_n i_o mean_v they_o neither_o claim_v nor_o use_v the_o supremacy_n hart._n but_o will_v you_o grant_v that_o so_o much_o then_o of_o the_o suprepremacie_n as_o they_o claim_v or_o use_v belong_v to_o their_o see_v and_o be_v they_o of_o right_n rainoldes_n no._n for_o the_o exception_n chapter_n which_o i_o make_v against_o they_o be_v of_o two_o branch_n one_o that_o they_o avouch_v not_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o other_o that_o they_o avouch_v more_o through_o affection_n then_o be_v true_a and_o right_o and_o this_o be_v very_o manifest_a not_o only_o by_o the_o deal_n of_o they_o who_o i_o name_v but_o also_o by_o the_o write_n of_o they_o who_o you_o allege_v hart._n of_o the_o third_o sort_n of_o pope_n if_o you_o mean_v they_o may_v be_v refuse_v perhaps_o with_o great_a show_n of_o reason_n but_o they_o who_o i_o allege_v of_o the_o second_o sort_n be_v holy_a man_n and_o saint_n rainoldes_n the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n i_o hope_v be_v saint_n too_o yet_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n set_v down_o for_o our_o instruction_n that_o 22.24_o they_o do_v not_o only_o desire_v superiority_n but_o also_o strive_v about_o it_o innocentius_n leo_n gelasius_n vigilius_n pelagius_n and_o gregory_n the_o man_n who_o you_o allege_v be_v not_o great_a than_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o praise_n which_o they_o give_v to_o their_o see_n of_o rome_n do_v so_o exceed_v the_o truth_n that_o it_o bear_v evident_a mark_n of_o their_o affection_n you_o may_v have_v perceive_v it_o in_o that_o which_o you_o cite_v out_o of_o aug._n innocentius_n concern_v the_o father_n and_o the_o sentence_n of_o god_n by_o which_o he_o say_v they_o decree_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v in_o province_n far_o off_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v conclude_v before_o it_o come_v to_o the_o notice_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n for_o what_o be_v the_o father_n who_o decree_v that_o where_o be_v the_o sentence_n of_o god_n by_o which_o they_o do_v it_o though_o this_o be_v the_o least_o of_o many_o friendly_a speech_n which_o not_o innocentius_n only_o but_o the_o rest_n too_o as_o 2._o i_o have_v show_v in_o leo_n do_v lend_v their_o church_n &_o peter_n yea_o some_o flat_a repugnant_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o that_o confess_v by_o yourselves_o for_o they_o say_v that_o ult._n all_o church_n take_v their_o beginning_n from_o the_o roman_a the_o holy_a 4·_v scripture_n make_v ciborum_fw-la jerusalem_n the_o spring_n of_o they_o they_o say_v that_o aug._n all_o bishop_n have_v their_o honour_n and_o name_n from_o peter_n the_o holy_a 7._o scripture_n teach_v that_o many_o have_v it_o from_o other_o apostle_n not_o from_o he_o they_o say_v episcopis_fw-la that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v neither_o spot_n norwrinckle_n nor_o any_o such_o thing_n the_o holy_a ●7_n scripture_n show_v that_o the_o church_n be_v san●ctified_v &_o frame_v to_o be_v hereafter_o not_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n when_o christ_n shall_v make_v it_o glorious_a &_o triumphant_a in_o heaven_n not_o but_o that_o it_o have_v such_o while_o it_o be_v militant_a on_o the_o earth_n 18._o which_o be_v so_o apparent_a that_o not_o the_o father_n only_a but_o 3._o thomas_n of_o aquine_n also_o and_o d_o 8._o stapleton_n confess_v it_o wherefore_o howsoever_o holy_a man_n they_o be_v of_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o pope_n which_o you_o allege_v it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o they_o have_v affection_n and_o yield_v thereunto_o as_o man_n howbeit_o the_o third_o sort_n i_o grant_v be_v best_a worthy_a to_o be_v except_v against_o for_o this_o fault_n for_o it_o be_v a_o small_a thing_n with_o they_o to_o use_v speech_n repugnant_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o they_o must_v abuse_v yea_o coin_n scripture_n too_o for_o maintenance_n of_o their_o papal_a port_n they_o can_v teach_v the_o church_n that_o electione_n the_o pope_n may_v offer_v to_o confirm_v archbishop_n exhiberes_fw-la upon_o this_o condition_n if_o they_o will_v be_v swear_v to_o he_o because_o when_o christ_n commit_v his_o sheep_n unto_o peter_n he_o posuit_fw-la do_v condition_n with_o he_o say_v 21.16_o if_o thou_o love_v i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n they_o can_v teach_v the_o church_n that_o ob_v the_o pope_n have_v power_n over_o all_o power_n &_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n &_o none_o have_v power_n over_o he_o because_o 2.15_o the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n yet_o he_o himself_o be_v judge_v of_o no_o man_n they_o can_v teach_v the_o church_n that_o 11._o christ_n ordain_v peter_n and_o peter_n successor_n to_o be_v his_o vicar_n who_o by_o testimonio_fw-la the_o testimony_n of_o the_o book_n of_o king_n must_v needs_o be_v so_o obey_v that_o he_o who_o obei_v they_o not_o must_v die_v the_o death_n and_o as_o it_o be_v read_v read_v otherwhere_o he_o that_o forsake_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n chair_n can_v be_v in_o the_o church_n hart._n that_o which_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o king_n be_v in_o the_o book_n of_o deuteronomie_n the_o text_n be_v true_a scripture_n though_o the_o place_n mistake_v and_o though_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n immediate_o rainoldes_n nay_o never_o go_v about_o to_o salve_v it_o m._n hart._n that_o of_o deuteronomie_n we_o have_v 1._o already_o handle_v pope_n leo_n the_o ten_o and_o his_o council_n of_o laterane_n have_v a_o strong_a affection_n to_o make_v the_o pope_n king_n when_o they_o allege_v the_o book_n of_o king_n for_o deuteronomie_n &_o deuteronomie_n for_o the_o papacy_n but_o what_o soever_o you_o think_v of_o the_o three_o or_o second_o or_o any_o sort_n of_o pope_n it_o be_v against_o all_o law_n both_o of_o god_n and_o man_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v witness_n in_o their_o own_o matter_n and_o therefore_o if_o your_o proof_n of_o their_o supremacy_n be_v no_o better_o the_o jury_n will_v cast_v you_o out_o of_o all_o controversy_n for_o 5.31_o if_o i_o shall_v bear_v witness_n of_o myself_o say_v christ_n my_o witness_n be_v not_o true_a testes_fw-la none_o be_v fit_a witness_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n roscio_n no_o not_o though_o they_o be_v as_o worthy_a man_n as_o scipio_n be_v among_o the_o roman_n it_o be_v a_o bad_a plea_n in_o westminster_n hall_n john_n a_o noke_n must_v have_v this_o land_n for_o john_n a_o noke_n say_v so_o the_o andreae_n canoniste_n themselves_o when_o pope_n allege_v pope_n for_o proof_n of_o certain_a point_n touch_v their_o supremacy_n do_v note_n that_o testem_fw-la it_o be_v a_o familiar_a kind_n of_o proof_n mean_v such_o belike_o as_o that_o in_o the_o common_a proverb_n ask_v my_o fellow_n if_o i_o be_v a_o thief_n which_o they_o may_v note_v the_o better_a because_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o 13.5_o the_o pope_n have_v stretch_v out_o their_o own_o frindge_n in_o lay_v claim_n to_o large_a power_n as_o division_n great_a divine_n among_o you_o have_v write_v in_o these_o very_a term_n hart._n the_o power_n which_o they_o claim_v have_v seem_v over_o large_a to_o envious_a and_o malicious_a man_n but_o it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o their_o right_n and_o due_a which_o because_o you_o think_v not_o sufficient_o prove_v by_o the_o pope_n themselves_o i_o will_v prove_v it_o far_o by_o the_o word_n and_o testimony_n of_o other_o ancient_a father_n rainoldes_n of_o who_o hart._n of_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o both_o greek_a and_o latin_a for_o it_o be_v the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o pope_n office_n that_o make_v s._n bernarde_n seek_v to_o innocentius_n the_o three_o epist._n 190._o s._n austin_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n to_o innocentius_n the_o first_o and_o to_o caelestinus_n epist._n 90.92.95_o s._n chrysostome_n to_o the_o say_a innocentius_n epist._n 1._o &_o 2._o s._n basil_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o time_n epist._n 52._o s._n jerom_n to_o damasus_n epist._n 57.58_o tom_fw-mi 2._o and_o other_o likewise_o to_o other_o that_o by_o they_o they_o may_v be_v confirm_v in_o faith_n and_o ecclesiastical_a regiment_n rainoldes_n if_o you_o bring_v such_o witness_n to_o prove_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n i_o must_v request_v the_o jury_n to_o have_v a_o eye_n to_o the_o issue_n for_o some_o of_o these_o father_n desire_v to_o be_v help_v by_o their_o advice_n and_o counsel_n some_o by_o their_o authority_n and_o credit_n some_o by_o both_o by_o their_o advice_n and_o counsel_n as_o jerom_n of_o damasus_n by_o their_o authority_n &_o credit_n as_o chrysostome_n of_o innocentius_n by_o both_o as_o basill_n austin_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o their_o time_n bernard_n somewhat_o more_o but_o he_o live_v yesterday_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o rest_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v number_v among_o the_o ancient_a father_n though_o neither_o he_o by_o this_o
dastard_a which_o you_o set_v against_o they_o my_o former_a word_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o be_v equal_a in_o power_n agree_v well_o with_o these_o of_o peter_n and_o paul_n for_o i_o say_v not_o that_o paul_n be_v above_o peter_n but_o that_o he_o may_v have_v be_v above_o he_o in_o power_n for_o all_o the_o honour_n which_o he_o give_v he_o and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o overthrow_v your_o reason_n but_o if_o my_o example_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n do_v cause_v you_o to_o mistake_v i_o you_o may_v take_v a_o other_o and_o fit_a for_o the_o purpose_n the_o college_n apostolic_a as_o 8._o the_o pope_n do_v call_v they_o i_o mean_v the_o cardinal_n of_o rome_n who_o though_o they_o be_v in_o state_n order_n and_o live_n one_o above_o a_o other_o 1._o yet_o deferendo_fw-la in_o all_o thing_n and_o with_o all_o courtesy_n they_o all_o give_v high_a reverence_n one_o unto_o a_o other_o and_o when_o any_o of_o they_o do_v come_v into_o the_o chapel_n of_o the_o pope_n holiness_n to_o say_v his_o devotion_n he_o turn_v towards_o the_o cardinal_n of_o his_o own_o order_n and_o go_v not_o direct_o to_o his_o own_o place_n unless_o he_o be_v the_o low_a but_o beginning_n at_o the_o low_a velit_fw-la as_o though_o he_o will_v abide_v there_o he_o be_v desire_v &_o entreat_v of_o every_o one_o to_o go_v high_o until_o he_o come_v direct_o to_o his_o own_o place_n unless_o he_o be_v the_o low_a &_o himself_o iterum_fw-la demure_o once_o &_o again_o desire_v he_o who_o be_v next_o unto_o he_o that_o he_o will_v go_v before_o he_o &_o residet_fw-la at_o length_n he_o sit_v down_o in_o his_o place_n this_o be_v a_o foul_a trouble_n to_o make_v so_o much_o ado_n at_o the_o come_n in_o of_o every_o cardinal_n to_o prayer_n chief_o when_o prayer_n be_v begin_v yet_o to_o show_v how_o modest_o they_o think_v of_o themselves_o and_o how_o they_o honour_v one_o a_o other_o pontifice_fw-la every_o one_o that_o come_v after_o other_o do_v it_o whither_o the_o pope_n be_v there_o or_o no._n out_o of_o doubt_n cardinal_n man_n of_o such_o wisdom_n will_v not_o commit_v this_o folly_n if_o every_o one_o who_o they_o honour_v must_v be_v above_o they_o in_o power_n but_o you_o deal_v injurious_o with_o i_o to_o say_v that_o you_o frame_v your_o reason_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n and_o i_o bring_v the_o book_n of_o ceremony_n to_o kill_v it_o for_o neither_o do_v you_o ground_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n but_o only_o on_o a_o circumstance_n observe_v by_o the_o father_n that_o paul_n go_v to_o peter_n of_o reverence_n to_o honour_v he_o and_o i_o slay_v the_o reason_n which_o you_o make_v thereof_o with_o the_o sword_n of_o scripture_n i_o use_v the_o book_n of_o ceremony_n but_o as_o a_o irish_a lackey_n to_o cut_v off_o a_o dead_a man_n head_n i_o will_v not_o have_v vouchsafe_v as_o much_o as_o to_o name_v he_o but_o to_o cast_v the_o doong_n of_o your_o solemnity_n in_o your_o face_n and_o to_o show_v the_o fondness_n of_o a_o popish_a reason_n by_o practice_n of_o a_o papal_a mockery_n though_o i_o see_v not_o why_o you_o shall_v prefer_v so_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n before_o the_o book_n of_o ceremony_n for_o the_o book_n of_o ceremony_n speak_v more_o good_a of_o the_o pope_n in_o one_o leaf_n then_o both_o the_o other_o do_v throughout_o all_o their_o volume_n and_o privilegi●_n it_o be_v solemn_o print_v at_o rome_n with_o peter_n picture_n in_o the_o front_n and_o the_o key_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o meas_fw-la feed_v my_o sheep_n write_v about_o he_o as_o a_o book_n of_o great_a account_n where_o many_o of_o the_o father_n do_v lie_v in_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o vatican_n library_n and_o can_v come_v into_o the_o light_n notwithstanding_o if_o you_o be_v willing_a to_o yield_v yourself_o prisoner_n to_o the_o father_n as_o gentleman_n &_o think_v the_o book_n of_o ceremony_n to_o be_v a_o rascal_n soldier_n who_o you_o disdain_v to_o yield_v unto_o behold_v your_o own_o witness_n who_o make_v not_o paul_n inferior_a to_o peter_n otherwise_o then_o in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o apostleship_n the_o one_o make_v first_o the_o other_o last_o s._n jerome_n who_o put_v 2._o a_o equality_n between_o they_o though_o paul_n do_v honour_v he_o 1._o as_o a_o apostle_n before_o he_o s._n 1._o chrysostome_n who_o pronounce_v that_o paul_n to_o say_v no_o more_o of_o he_o be_v peter_n peer_n in_o dignity_n s._n ●_o ambrose_n who_o give_v a_o primacy_n to_o they_o both_o and_o say_v that_o paul_n be_v even_o such_o a_o other_o as_o peter_n s._n 1._o austin_n who_o declare_v their_o authority_n to_o have_v be_v equal_a and_o that_o for_o paul_n honour_n what_o he_o want_v in_o time_n be_v supply_v by_o christ_n glory_n in_o that_o he_o make_v he_o a_o apostle_n not_o as_o the_o rest_n upon_o the_o earth_n but_o when_o he_o reign_v now_o in_o majesty_n and_o these_o thing_n be_v write_v by_o the_o same_o father_n who_o word_n touch_v the_o honour_n that_o paul_n give_v to_o peter_n your_o 1●_n doctor_n set_v in_o a_o beadrole_n as_o though_o in_o their_o judgement_n paul_n acknowledge_v peter_n his_o supreme_a head_n thereby_o wherein_o you_o may_v perceive_v both_o his_o deceitful_a deal_n that_o allege_v their_o word_n as_o set_v one_o above_o the_o other_o who_o in_o express_a word_n do_v make_v one_o equal_a to_o the_o other_o and_o your_o exposition_n how_o jump_o they_o meet_v with_o the_o father_n who_o gather_v a_o equality_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n by_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n whence_o you_o conclude_v peter_n supremacy_n over_o paul_n hart._n how_o the_o father_n all_o agree_v with_o one_o consent_n of_o peter_n supremacy_n it_o shall_v be_v show_v hereafter_o as_o for_o the_o circumstance_n which_o i_o observe_v out_o of_o they_o touch_v the_o fact_n of_o paul_n y●_z when_o he_o go_v to_o see_v peter_n he_o go_v of_o reverence_n to_o honour_v he_o i_o do_v not_o account_v so_o great_o thereof_o as_o of_o the_o fact_n itself_o nor_o urge_v i_o the_o father_n so_o much_o observe_v that_o as_o the_o report_n of_o this_o make_v by_o the_o scripture_n for_o they_o set_v it_o forth_o with_o so_o lively_a word_n as_o if_o it_o be_v of_o purpose_n to_o paint_v out_o peter_n primacy_n 1.18_o then_o after_o three_o year_n i_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n say_v paul_n to_o see_v peter_n and_o tarry_v with_o he_o fifteen_o day_n mark_v his_o word_n i_o pray_v and_o see_v what_o weight_n they_o carry_v with_o they_o he_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n so_o far_o so_o long_o a_o journey_n and_o he_o go_v notwithstanding_o his_o great_a affair_n ecclesiastical_a and_o he_o go_v to_o see_v peter_n not_o in_o the_o vulgar_a manner_n but_o as_o s._n 1._o chrysostom_n note_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d greek_a word_n import_v to_o behold_v he_o as_o man_n behold_v a_o thing_n or_o person_n of_o name_n excellency_n and_o majesty_n neither_o do_v he_o go_v only_o to_o see_v he_o but_o he_o abide_v with_o he_o also_o to_o fill_v himself_o with_o a_o perfect_a view_n of_o his_o behaviour_n and_o he_o abide_v with_o he_o no_o common_a time_n but_o fifteen_o day_n fiftene_o day_n a_o great_a matter_n and_o more_o than_o many_o will_v think_v who_o do_v not_o search_v the_o depth_n of_o scripture_n in_o such_o estimation_n be_v peter_n with_o paul_n and_o will_v you_o yet_o deny_v his_o primacy_n rainoldes_n king_n apophthegm_n agesilaus_n when_o one_o praise_v a_o orator_n that_o he_o can_v amplify_v thing_n and_o make_v they_o of_o small_a to_o seem_v great_a i_o say_v he_o will_v never_o count_v he_o a_o good_a shoemaker_n who_o will_v put_v a_o great_a shoe_n upon_o a_o small_a foot_n you_o play_v the_o orator_n m._n hart_n with_o your_o amplification_n and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o you_o pass_v the_o shoemaker_n of_o agesilaus_n for_o you_o do_v not_o only_o put_v a_o great_a shoe_n upon_o a_o small_a foot_n but_o you_o stretch_v the_o leather_n with_o your_o ●éeth_n too_o and_o yet_o when_o you_o have_v wéery_v yourself_o with_o stretch_v it_o you_o will_v have_v stretch_v it_o in_o vain_a for_o though_o your_o shoe_n be_v too_o great_a for_o the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n yet_o will_v it_o be_v too_o small_a for_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n hart._n we_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o pope_n now_o but_o of_o peter_n why_o stray_v you_o from_o the_o point_n rainoldes_n i_o think_v they_o have_v be_v thing_n both_o of_o one_o nature_n and_o differ_v in_o name_n only_o but_o i_o will_v speak_v of_o peter_n and_o that_o you_o may_v see_v that_o the_o shoe_n which_o you_o make_v be_v too_o great_a for_o his_o foot_n i_o will_v show_v it_o by_o a_o plain_a demonstration_n to_o the_o
purpose_n but_o you_o may_v not_o be_v touch_v with_o any_o such_o suspicion_n why_o because_o the_o doctrine_n which_o you_o profess_v be_v not_o old_a and_o ample_a heresy_n you_o say_v no_o not_o heresy_n we_o be_v so_o not_o you_o whether_o in_o opinion_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o we_o you_o or_o we_o do_v hold_v heresy_n that_o be_v the_o point_n in_o question_n your_o or_o i_o yea_o or_o nay_o be_v no_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o either_o but_o of_o which_o soever_o it_o shall_v appear_v by_o conference_n that_o they_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n let_v they_o be_v judge_v heresy_n and_o the_o man_n heretic_n who_o stubburn_o maintain_v they_o thus_o much_o you_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o grant_v that_o your_o opinion_n be_v old_a and_o spread_v abroad_o for_o 3●_n you_o claim_v antiquity_n &_o universality_n whereof_o you_o say_v that_o our_o opinion_n have_v neither_o it_o be_v more_o likely_a therefore_o by_o vincentius_n that_o you_o who_o occasio_fw-la by_o long_a continuance_n of_o time_n have_v have_v long_a occasion_n to_o steal_v away_o the_o truth_n shall_v corrupt_v the_o father_n than_o we_o who_o have_v not_o have_v it_o and_o in_o very_a truth_n as_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n the_o great_a abomination_n that_o first_o prevail_v in_o popery_n be_v confirm_v by_o fabulosis_fw-la writing_n very_o uncertain_a and_o fabulous_a yea_o by_o somnijs_fw-la dream_n of_o woman_n and_o ●pectris_n vision_n of_o devil_n in_o the_o 5._o second_o nicen_n council_n as_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o 4._o great_a clerk_n of_o your_o own_o testify_v so_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o error_n which_o overflow_v christendom_n in_o darkness_n of_o superstition_n have_v be_v most_o authorise_v by_o forge_a deed_n and_o bastard_n writing_n beget_v by_o some_o varlet_n and_o father_v on_o the_o doctor_n the_o schoolman_n and_o canonist_n who_o hand_n be_v chief_a in_o this_o iniquity_n do_v bear_v the_o whole_a sway_n for_o many_o year_n together_o in_o university_n and_o church_n the_o doctor_n &_o father_n be_v pretend_v much_o but_o more_o pretend_a then_o regard_v and_o their_o book_n corrupt_v what_o through_o ignorance_n of_o scrivener_n who_o copy_v they_o out_o before_o the_o use_n of_o print_v what_o through_o impudence_n of_o forger_n who_o coin_v counterfeit_v in_o their_o name_n now_o when_o they_o lie_v thus_o distress_v and_o disease_v in_o the_o dust_n of_o library_n erasmus_n a_o man_n of_o excellent_a judgement_n and_o no_o less_o industrious_a then_o learned_a and_o witty_a do_v enterprise_n first_o to_o cure_v they_o and_o bring_v they_o forth_o into_o the_o light_n in_o the_o work_n of_o s._n jerome_n which_o be_v most_o of_o all_o deprave_a above_o other_o chief_o the_o former_a tome_n he_o do_v what_o he_o can_v both_o to_o cleanse_v they_o from_o blemish_n and_o to_o lighten_v they_o with_o his_o note_n cantuar._n he_o profess_v that_o his_o conjecture_n in_o restore_v of_o place_n have_v not_o satisfy_v himself_o always_o he_o promise_v that_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v restore_v they_o better_o he_o will_v both_o embrace_v his_o travail_n very_o glad_o and_o rejoice_v at_o the_o public_a profit_n what_o sparkle_v of_o thankfulness_n but_o i_o let_v go_v thankfulness_n what_o sparkle_v of_o ingenuity_n be_v there_o and_o good_a nature_n in_o marian_n victorius_n hieronymi_n who_o requite_v such_o a_o work_n so_o careful_o attempt_v so_o painful_o perform_v so_o modest_o excuse_v with_o the_o taunt_n and_o contumely_n of_o err_a of_o lie_v of_o craftiness_n of_o ignorance_n of_o heresy_n of_o impiety_n sophistarum_fw-la aristotle_n write_v of_o they_o who_o begin_v a_o thing_n in_o point_n of_o learning_n that_o although_o they_o seem_v to_o do_v less_o than_o other_o who_o receive_v it_o of_o they_o and_o after_o add_v thereto_o yet_o they_o do_v more_o in_o deed_n because_o the_o beginning_n of_o every_o thing_n be_v hard_a and_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o add_v whereupon_o he_o crave_v of_o such_o as_o he_o have_v seek_v to_o benefit_n by_o his_o labour_n thanks_n for_o that_o he_o find_v pardon_v for_o that_o he_o miss_v if_o victorius_n have_v profit_v no_o better_o in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n let_v he_o go_v to_o aristotle_n and_o learn_v first_o to_o think_v more_o humble_o of_o himself_o afterward_o to_o deal_v more_o modest_o with_o other_o and_o you_o who_o like_v of_o he_o because_o he_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o do_n of_o erasmus_n as_o a_o shoemaker_n do_v with_o the_o picture_n of_o apelles_n for_o miss_v in_o a_o shoo-latchet_a may_v know_v that_o claris_fw-la good_a and_o learned_a man_n among_o yourselves_o have_v find_v fault_n with_o he_o for_o be_v bold_a beyond_o the_o shoe_n that_o do_v vict._n molanus_n witness_n one_o of_o your_o chief_a doctor_n and_o censor_n of_o book_n who_o in_o s._n jeromes_n work_n 1578._o set_v forth_o at_o antwerp_n have_v therefore_o circumcise_v the_o lip_n of_o victorius_n hart._n molanus_n have_v reprove_v and_o correct_v he_o for_o uncivil_a speech_n against_o the_o person_n of_o erasmus_n as_o wherein_o modestiam_fw-la he_o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o christian_a modesty_n not_o for_o oversight_n in_o that_o he_o lay_v error_n to_o erasmus_n charge_n though_o the_o special_a point_n for_o which_o we_o blame_v erasmus_n be_v not_o this_o so_o much_o of_o error_n in_o s._n jerome_n his_o censure_n on_o s._n austin_n be_v mislike_v most_o in_o that_o he_o reject_v sundry_a book_n as_o counterfeit_v which_o torrensis_n prove_v to_o be_v s._n augustine_n own_o whereof_o the_o importance_n and_o danger_n be_v the_o great_a because_o some_o will_v have_v nothing_o take_v for_o s._n augustine_n but_o what_o erasmus_n have_v allow_v rainoldes_n molanus_n do_v cover_v the_o sin_n of_o victorius_n when_o he_o find_v no_o other_o fault_n with_o his_o note_n but_o of_o uncivil_a speech_n if_o favour_n to_o the_o man_n and_o fancy_n to_o the_o cause_n have_v not_o make_v he_o partial_a he_o may_v have_v say_v of_o he_o that_o as_o he_o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o christian_a modesty_n in_o pessimum_fw-la rail_v at_o erasmus_n person_n so_o have_v he_o past_o the_o bound_n of_o christian_a truth_n in_o note_v error_n of_o erasmus_n but_o former_a he_o that_o will_v affirm_v erasmus_n to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o greek_a tongue_n whereof_o his_o work_n so_o many_o both_o in_o divinity_n and_o humanity_n through_o all_o sort_n of_o writer_n do_v proclaim_v the_o contrary_a need_v no_o other_o censor_n to_o advertise_v man_n with_o what_o eye_n he_o look_v into_o erasmus_fw-la do_n it_o be_v not_o erasmus_n ignorance_n of_o greek_a which_o breed_v so_o many_o error_n in_o his_o correction_n of_o or_o note_n upon_o s._n jerome_n it_o be_v his_o knowledge_n of_o the_o latin_a the_o roman_a church_n fault_n it_o be_v his_o skill_n of_o the_o italian_a abuse_n of_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v passim_fw-la the_o triacle_n which_o he_o give_v that_o sudit_fw-la seem_v poison_n unto_o you_o these_o thing_n because_o they_o move_v many_o to_o suspect_v that_o somewhat_o in_o popery_n be_v not_o of_o the_o best_a it_o be_v think_v expedient_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v take_v out_o of_o s._n jerome_n victorius_n to_o do_v it_o with_o a_o fair_a show_n pretend_v other_o error_n but_o through_o too_o much_o choler_n he_o bewray_v his_o humour_n he_o lack_v that_o discretion_n which_o have_v be_v show_v since_o by_o the_o divine_n of_o lovan_n in_o set_v forth_o the_o note_n of_o vives_z on_o s._n austin_n for_o throughout_o they_o have_v omit_v a_o great_a many_o thing_n wherein_o vives_z touch_v their_o pope_n and_o church_n sore_n yet_o say_v they_o not_o so_o much_o only_o plantin_n they_o say_v that_o lovaniensis_fw-la certain_a thing_n be_v omit_v certain_a as_o not_o many_o and_o error_n they_o name_v they_o not_o neither_o tell_v they_o wat_fw-mi now_o if_o the_o note_n of_o vives_z on_o s._n austin_n have_v find_v such_o disfavour_v the_o censure_n of_o erasmus_n on_o he_o may_v better_o bear_v it_o and_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n they_o have_v deserve_v it_o at_o your_o hand_n for_o in_o those_o censure_n have_v erasmus_n show_v that_o many_o book_n do_v false_o bear_v s._n augustine_n name_n by_o which_o as_o by_o the_o warrant_n of_o s._n augustine_n judgement_n sundry_a of_o your_o schoolman_n and_o canonist_n dream_n have_v be_v advance_v and_o aid_v but_o he_o reject_v some_o as_o counterfeit_v you_o say_v which_o torrensis_n prove_v to_o be_v s._n augustine_n own_o and_o what_o marvel_n be_v it_o if_o among_o hundred_o he_o be_v deceive_v in_o one_o or_o two_o and_o have_v have_v trial_n of_o many_o false_a title_n he_o think_v somefalse_a which_o be_v not_o a_o fish_n that_o have_v be_v touch_v once_o with_o the_o hook_n be_v say_v to_o fear_v the_o hook_n under_o every_o meat_n they_o who_o
the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o whether_o any_o of_o they_o be_v who_o can_v say_v we_o have_v no_o assurance_n then_o of_o mystical_a sense_n which_o may_v be_v man_n fancy_n only_o the_o literal_a sense_n which_o be_v mean_v undoubted_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v of_o force_n to_o prove_v the_o assure_a truth_n and_o therefore_o do_v bind_v in_o matter_n of_o belief_n and_o this_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o seminary_n your_o own_o doctor_n acknowledge_v it_o and_o teach_v it_o even_o 5._o he_o who_o you_o allege_v for_o he_o say_v it_o be_v agree_v between_o you_o and_o we_o efficacia_fw-la that_o forcible_a agument_n ought_v to_o be_v draw_v only_o from_o the_o literal_a sense_n and_o that_o be_v sure_o know_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o for_o mystical_a sense_n it_o be_v not_o always_o sure_a whether_o the_o holy_a ghost_n mean_v they_o unless_o they_o be_v expound_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o that_o in_o john_n you_o shall_v not_o break_v a_o bone_n of_o he_o fidei_fw-la which_o except_v it_o be_v a_o folly_n to_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v the_o point_n of_o faith_n forcible_o by_o mystical_a sense_n wherefore_o if_o it_o be_v not_o expound_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n touch_v one_o pastor_n be_v mean_v as_o of_o himself_o by_o the_o literal_a sense_n so_o by_o the_o mystical_a of_o the_o pope_n you_o see_v that_o father_n robert_n say_v it_o be_v a_o folly_n to_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n by_o they_o if_o you_o will_v prove_v it_o forcible_o now_o what_o i_o say_v of_o one_o pastor_n the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o high_a priest_n by_o who_o 28.4_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n do_v signify_v the_o high_a priest_n literal_o 8.5_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n do_v show_v that_o mystical_o he_o betoken_v christ._n but_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v mean_v by_o he_o in_o any_o sense_n either_o literal_a or_o mystical_a i_o find_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n hart._n division_n but_o i_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o christian_n must_v still_o have_v a_o high_a priest_n among_o they_o on_o earth_n to_o be_v their_o chief_a judge_n rainoldes_n be_v find_v you_o that_o hart._n in_o the_o seventéenth_fw-mi chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o deuteronomie_n even_o in_o these_o word_n 17.8_o if_o there_o rise_v a_o matter_n too_o hard_o for_o thou_o in_o judgement_n between_o blood_n and_o blood_n between_o latin_n cause_n &_o cause_n between_o plague_n and_o plague_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o controversy_n within_o thy_o gate_n then_o shall_v thou_o arise_v and_o go_v up_o to_o the_o place_n which_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n shall_v choose_v and_o thou_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o leviticall_a priest_n and_o to_o the_o judge_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o those_o day_n and_o ask_v and_o they_o shall_v show_v thou_o the_o sentence_n of_o judgement_n and_o thou_o shall_v do_v according_a to_o that_o thing_n which_o they_o shall_v show_v thou_o from_o that_o place_n that_o the_o lord_n shall_v choose_v and_o thou_o shall_v observe_v to_o do_v according_a to_o all_o that_o they_o shall_v inform_v thou_o according_a to_o the_o law_n which_o they_o shall_v teach_v thou_o and_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n which_o they_o shall_v tell_v thou_o shall_v thou_o do_v thou_o shall_v not_o decline_v from_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o shall_v show_v thou_o neither_o to_o the_o right_a hand_n nor_o to_o the_o left_a and_o he_o that_o shall_v presumptuous_o refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o priest_n who_o serve_v then_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n ille_fw-la by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o judge_n shall_v that_o man_n die_v and_o thou_o shall_v take_v away_o evil_a out_o of_o israel_n here_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v make_v the_o chief_a judge_n to_o hear_v and_o determine_v hard_a and_o doubtful_a cause_n among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o who_o among_o christian_n be_v such_o a_o priest_n and_o judge_n but_o the_o pope_n only_o rainoldes_n now_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n will_v serve_v you_o as_o well_o to_o prove_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n if_o it_o be_v consider_v for_o 1.1_o it_o be_v write_v there_o in_o the_o beginning_n god_n create_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n obedient_a hart._n what_o mean_v you_o so_o to_o say_v rainoldes_n nay_o ask_v that_o of_o eight_o he_o who_o do_v expound_v it_o so_o say_v that_o whosoever_o resist_v his_o supremacy_n resist_v god_n ordinance_n unless_o he_o fain_o as_o manichee_n do_v that_o there_o be_v manichaeus_n two_o beginning_n which_o be_v false_a &_o heretical_a because_o as_o moses_n witness_v ●ecram_fw-la not_o in_o the_o beginning_n but_o in_o the_o beginning_n god_n create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n see_v in_o the_o beginning_n not_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o therefore_o not_o many_o be_v high_a priest_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o pope_n only_o hart._n the_o place_n which_o i_o allege_v do_v plain_o speak_v of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o so_o it_o do_v serve_v my_o purpose_n more_o fit_o than_o this_o which_o do_v not_o touch_v he_o howbeit_o as_o learned_a man_n when_o they_o have_v prove_v a_o point_n by_o strong_a argument_n be_v wont_a to_o set_v it_o forth_o with_o floorish_n of_o light_a reason_n rather_o to_o polish_a it_o as_o it_o be_v then_o to_o work_v it_o and_o frame_v it_o so_o the_o pope_n have_v bring_v better_a evidence_n for_o proof_n of_o his_o supremacy_n do_v trim_a it_o up_o with_o this_o of_o genesis_n as_o you_o will_v say_v by_o a_o allusion_n rainoldes_n a_o illusion_n you_o shall_v say_v but_o the_o place_n both_o as_o well_o this_o of_o genesis_n as_o that_o of_o deuteronomie_n be_v take_v in_o a_o mystical_a sense_n of_o your_o own_o so_o that_o to_o win_v a_o matter_n which_o must_v be_v win_v by_o sound_a proof_n they_o be_v both_o of_o like_a force_n because_o that_o neither_o be_v of_o any_o for_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o that_o in_o deuteronomie_n do_v concern_v the_o jew_n to_o who_o the_o lord_n speak_v it_o by_o his_o servant_n moses_n now_o how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v to_o buyld_v as_o upon_o scripture_n thing_n which_o be_v not_o ground_v upon_o the_o literal_a sense_n thereof_o we_o may_v learn_v by_o the_o mystical_a sense_n of_o that_o place_n which_o a_o pope_n give_v and_o no_o common_a pope_n but_o innocentius_n the_o three_o the_o father_n of_o the_o lateran-councel_n in_o which_o your_o popish_a shrift_n and_o transubstantiation_n be_v enact_v first_o he_o in_o a_o decretal_a which_o be_v enroll_v in_o the_o legitimi_fw-la canon_n law_n as_o a_o rule_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n for_o ever_o do_v bring_v forth_o that_o same_o place_n of_o deuteronomie_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v exercise_v temporal_a jurisdiction_n not_o only_o in_o his_o own_o dominion_n but_o in_o other_o country_n too_o on_o certain_a cause_n and_o pope_n because_o deuteronomic_a be_v the_o second_o law_n by_o interpretation_n it_o be_v prove_v say_v he_o by_o the_o force_n of_o the_o word_n that_o what_o be_v there_o decree_v aught_o to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n upon_o the_o which_o principle_n he_o do_v expound_v it_o thus_o that_o the_o place_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v choose_v be_v rome_n the_o leviticall_a priest_n be_v his_o brethren_n the_o cardinal_n the_o judge_n be_v himself_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n the_o judgement_n be_v of_o three_o sort_n the_o firs●_o between_o blood_n and_o blood_n be_v mean_v of_o civil_a criminal_a &_o civil_a cause_n the_o last_o between_o plague_n and_o plague_n of_o criminale_fw-la ecclesiastical_a and_o criminal_a the_o middle_n between_o cause_n &_o cause_n pertain_v unto_o 〈◊〉_d both_o ecclesiastical_a &_o civil_a in_o the_o which_o when_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v hard_a or_o doubtful_a recourse_n must_v be_v have_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a that_o be_v of_o rome_n who_o determination_n if_o any_o man_n presumptuous_o refuse_v to_o obey_v he_o be_v adjudge_v to_o die_v that_o be_v to_o be_v cut_v off_o as_o a_o dead_a man_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o excommunication_n lo_o this_o be_v a_o mystical_a sense_n of_o that_o place_n which_o you_o allege_v out_o of_o deuteronomie_n it_o run_v very_o roundly_o with_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n but_o christian_a state_n i_o hope_v will_v hold_v the_o literal_a sense_n against_o it_o for_o if_o they_o allow_v this_o doctrine_n of_o pope_n innocentius_n as_o catholic_a the_o pope_n must_v be_v supreme_a head_n of_o all_o christian_n both_o in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n and_o civil_a the_o 2.7_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n do_v work_v very_o fast_o when_o the_o chief_a mystery_n of_o the_o romish_a faith_n be_v build_v upon_o such_o mystical_a sense_n hart._n i_o
know_v that_o the_o mystical_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o no_o strength_n to_o convince_v a_o adversary_n but_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o that_o which_o i_o allege_v do_v prove_v the_o point_n in_o question_n for_o there_o lie_v often_o time_n within_o the_o literal_a a_o other_o sense_n hide_v which_o be_v not_o direct_o utter_v and_o plain_o but_o be_v gather_v and_o infer_v by_o the_o force_n of_o argument_n as_o for_o example_n 3.6_o god_n say_v to_o comfort_n moses_n and_o the_o israelite_n i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n the_o god_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n these_o word_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n do_v signify_v the_o covenant_n that_o god_n make_v with_o abraham_n and_o with_o abraham_n seed_n who_o he_o choose_v to_o be_v his_o servant_n and_o promise_v he_o will_v be_v their_o god_n but_o 22.32_o christ_n allege_v they_o to_o prove_v against_o the_o sadducee_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a which_o he_o do_v conclude_v by_o consequence_n of_o reason_n god_n be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o the_o live_n he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n therefore_o abraham_n be_v not_o dead_a abraham_n be_v a_o man_n consist_v of_o two_o part_n the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n if_o abraham_n then_o live_v and_o yet_o his_o body_n be_v dead_a his_o body_n must_v rise_v again_o to_o the_o end_n that_o god_n may_v just_o be_v call_v the_o god_n not_o of_o abraham_n soul_n but_o of_o abraham_n wherefore_o in_o that_o god_n be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n it_o follow_v by_o discourse_n that_o the_o body_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v raise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n be_v not_o this_o reason_n contain_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n from_o which_o it_o be_v deduce_v rainoldes_n yes_o and_o be_v of_o force_n to_o prove_v the_o point_n in_o controversy_n for_o whatsoever_o follow_v necessary_o of_o the_o literal_a sense_n that_o be_v as_o true_a and_o sound_a as_o the_o sense_n whereof_o it_o follow_v but_o how_o will_v you_o gather_v so_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n from_o the_o place_n in_o deuteronomie_n hart._n by_o a_o reason_n which_o i_o ground_n upon_o the_o likeness_n and_o proportion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n for_o if_o the_o israelite_n have_v a_o high_a priest_n to_o be_v their_o judge_n in_o matter_n of_o difficulty_n and_o doubt_n between_o blood_n and_o blood_n between_o cause_n &_o cause_n between_o plague_n and_o plague_n why_o shall_v not_o we_o semblable_o have_v a_o high_a priest_n to_o be_v the_o judge_n in_o our_o cause_n rainoldes_n this_o reason_n be_v draw_v from_o a_o similitude_n that_o as_o it_o be_v among_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n so_o must_v it_o be_v among_o christian_n in_o the_o new_a logician_n say_v that_o similitude_n do_v halt_v of_o one_o foot_n but_o this_o do_v halt_v of_o both_o for_o neither_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n among_o the_o jew_n judge_v of_o all_o those_o matter_n nether_a do_v it_o follow_v thereof_o although_o he_o have_v be_v that_o among_o christian_n there_o must_v a_o high_a priest_n be_v likewise_o judge_v of_o all_o else_o it_o must_v be_v lawful_a for_o all_o your_o priest_n to_o marry_v for_o 7·_v it_o be_v so_o among_o the_o jew_n and_o mass_n must_v be_v be_v say_v no_o where_o but_o at_o rome_n for_o the_o jew_n 12.14_o may_v not_o sacrifice_v but_o in_o the_o place_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v choose_v and_o 16.16_o all_o the_o male_n among_o the_o jew_n must_v go_v thither_o every_o year_n thrice_o which_o be_v overmuch_o for_o all_o your_o male_n to_o rome_n yet_o must_v they_o do_v it_o by_o your_o reason_n for_o it_o be_v write_v in_o deuteronomie_n and_o because_o 〈◊〉_d deuteronomie_n be_v the_o second_o law_n by_o interpretation_n the_o force_n of_o the_o word_n prove_v that_o what_o be_v there_o decree_v aught_o to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n say_v pope_n innocentius_n hart._n the_o condition_n of_o christian_n be_v not_o in_o all_o respect_n like_v unto_o the_o jew_n nor_o rome_n unto_o jerusalem_n and_o why_o it_o be_v not_o like_a in_o the_o matter_n which_o you_o mention_v there_o may_v be_v reason_n give_v rainoldes_n may_v there_o be_v reason_n give_v then_o reason_n may_v be_v give_v why_o your_o reason_n be_v naught_o but_o that_o you_o may_v see_v what_o a_o lame_a thing_n it_o be_v mark_v the_o point_n whereon_o it_o stand_v first_o the_o high_a priest_n you_o say_v be_v the_o judge_n to_o who_o for_o the_o decide_n of_o hard_a and_o doubtful_a controversy_n the_o lord_n do_v send_v the_o jew_n this_o the_o scripture_n say_v not_o but_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o judge_n and_o the_o priest_n for_o it_o give_v sentence_n of_o death_n upon_o he_o who_o refuse_v to_o harken_v 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o priest_n or_o to_o the_o judge_n wherein_o by_o disjoin_v the_o priest_n from_o the_o judge_n it_o declare_v plain_o that_o the_o priest_n be_v not_o the_o same_o that_o the_o judge_n hart._n our_o common_a edition_n in_o latin_a do_v not_o read_v it_o so_o but_o in_o this_o sort_n he_o that_o shall_v presumptuous_o refuse_v to_o obey_v decreto_fw-la the_o commandment_n of_o the_o priest_n by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o judge_n shall_v that_o man_n die_v you_o see_v it_o be_v here_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o priest_n &_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o judge_n be_v a_o other_o point_n it_o be_v not_o as_o you_o cite_v it_o the_o priest_n or_o the_o judge_n rainoldes_n it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o your_o latin_a which_o man_n have_v translate_v but_o it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o hebrew_n write_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n hart._n but_o we_o have_v a_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 4._o that_o our_o old_a and_o common_a edition_n in_o latin_a shall_v be_v take_v as_o authentical_a in_o public_a lecture_n disputation_n sermon_n and_o exposition_n and_o that_o praesumat_fw-la no_o man_n may_v dare_v or_o presume_v to_o reject_v it_o under_o any_o pretence_n if_o no_o man_n may_v reject_v it_o under_o any_o pretence_n than_o not_o under_o pretence_n of_o the_o hebrew_n text_n and_o that_o for_o great_a reason_n for_o the_o hebrew_n bibles_n which_o be_v extant_a now_o be_v shameful_o corrupt_v in_o many_o place_n by_o the_o jew_n of_o spite_n and_o malice_n against_o christian_n as_o bishop_n 2._o lindan_n show_v large_o and_o learned_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o that_o decree_n of_o the_o trent-councell_n rainoldes_n this_o be_v a_o shameful_a slander_v brew_v by_o satan_n and_o set_v a_o broach_n by_o lindan_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o error_n which_o have_v prevail_v in_o popery_n either_o by_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o latin_a translator_n or_o by_o the_o over_o sight_n of_o they_o who_o have_v mistake_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v discover_v and_o put_v to_o shame_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o hebrew_n truth_n and_o this_o shall_v appear_v by_o his_o argument_n and_o deal_n if_o you_o will_v sift_v they_o in_o particular_a if_o in_o general_a only_o you_o mean_v to_o use_v his_o name_n to_o discredit_v the_o truth_n as_o 12._o your_o doctor_n do_v i_o will_v send_v both_o you_o and_o he_o for_o a_o answer_n to_o three_o of_o the_o learn_a and_o fit_a judge_n of_o this_o matter_n that_o your_o church_n have_v even_o isaac_n levita_fw-la arias_n montanus_n and_o payva_fw-la andradius_fw-la of_o who_o inscripfit_fw-la the_o first_o be_v lindan_n own_o master_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n in_o the_o university_n of_o coolen_n have_v write_v three_o book_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o hebrew_n truth_n against_o the_o cavil_n of_o his_o scholar_n 6._o the_o next_o for_o his_o rare_a skill_n of_o tongue_n and_o art_n be_v put_v in_o trust_n by_o king_n philip_n to_o set_v forth_o the_o bible_n in_o hebrew_n chaldee_n greek_n and_o latin_a wherein_o he_o have_v reprove_v that_o treatise_n of_o lindan_n and_o disclose_v his_o folly_n 4._o the_o last_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o the_o divine_n and_o doctor_n at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o decree_n whereof_o though_o he_o have_v defend_v and_o namely_o that_o which_o you_o mention_v yet_o not_o so_o but_o he_o have_v withal_o confute_v they_o who_o say_v that_o the_o jew_n have_v corrupt_v the_o hebrew_n text_n your_o cause_n m._n hart_n begin_v to_o be_v desperate_a when_o it_o can_v find_v no_o coovert_n but_o such_o as_o your_o own_o patroness_n be_v ashamed_a off_o hart._n i_o have_v not_o read_v th●se_a man_n discourse_n but_o certain_o what_o soever_o they_o say_v for_o the_o rest_n neither_o they_o nor_o you_o shall_v be_v ever_o able_a to_o prove_v 12._o that_o the_o jew_n have_v not_o corrupt_v the_o hebrew_n t●xt_v in_o the_o one_o and_o twentéeth_n psalm_n or_o 22.17_o
reason_n by_o philosophy_n that_o peter_n be_v appoint_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v that_o one_o it_o have_v some_o show_n of_o scripture_n but_o that_o the_o pope_n succéede_v peter_n therein_o it_o have_v no_o show_n of_o scripture_n and_o i_o trow_v you_o will_v not_o prove_v it_o by_o philosophy_n hart._n that_o the_o pope_n succéede_v peter_n therein_o division_n it_o be_v a_o clear_a case_n for_o chronics_n eusebius_n write_v that_o peter_n have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n where_o he_o sit_v seven_o year_n go_v to_o rome_n &_o preach_v the_o gospel_n there_o five_o and_o twenty_o year_n continue_v bishop_n of_o that_o city_n now_o the_o pope_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o you_o grant_v then_o i_o conclude_v thereof_o that_o he_o succede_v peter_n for_o peter_n continue_v bishop_n of_o that_o city_n as_o it_o be_v witness_v by_o eusebius_n rainoldes_n i_o desire_v that_o i_o may_v hear_v thus_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o you_o tell_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v hear_v it_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o your_o argument_n you_o fall_v from_o it_o to_z thus_o say_v the_o pope_n in_o the_o next_o you_o mend_v it_o with_o thus_o say_v philosopher_n now_o you_o prove_v the_o last_o by_z thus_o say_v eusebius_n and_o this_o be_v more_o sightly_o somewhat_o than_o the_o former_a but_o no_o stay_n of_o faith_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n hart._n you_o ought_v not_o to_o cast_v off_o eusebius_n so_o light_o as_o though_o he_o be_v of_o no_o credit_n for_o he_o be_v the_o best_a and_o ancient_a historian_n of_o all_o that_o have_v travel_v in_o set_v forth_o the_o story_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n and_o the_o pain_n the_o diligence_n the_o read_n and_o judgement_n which_o in_o his_o chronicle_n he_o show_v be_v great_a and_o wonderful_a in_o so_o much_o that_o 6._o canus_n be_v persuade_v of_o he_o that_o no_o ecclesiastical_a greek_a or_o latin_a author_n can_v have_v leave_v more_o excellent_a monument_n of_o time_n rainoldes_n i_o like_v of_o eusebius_n as_o of_o a_o good_a historian_n and_o i_o allow_v the_o praise_n give_v he_o by_o canus_n but_o 4._o canus_n have_v a_o good_a conclusion_n withal_o touch_v both_o he_o and_o all_o historian_n to_o weet_fw-mi that_o fidem_fw-la beside_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o scripture_n no_o historian_n can_v be_v sure_a that_o be_v to_o say_v able_a to_o make_v sure_a and_o certain_a proof_n in_o divinity_n a_o thing_n so_o apparent_a and_o evident_a of_o itself_o that_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v confirm_v with_o his_o proof_n only_o he_o reherse_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n a_o true_a &_o pleasant_a speech_n of_o 〈◊〉_d flavius_n vopiscus_n who_o begin_v to_o write_v story_n say_v that_o he_o enterprise_v it_o the_o more_o bold_o because_o he_o shall_v have_v companion_n in_o lie_v since_o he_o know_v no_o historian_n that_o have_v not_o lie_v in_o somewhat_o now_o if_o this_o be_v incident_a unto_o all_o historian_n except_o they_o of_o scripture_n who_o write_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o man_n then_o eusebius_n also_o though_o a_o good_a historian_n may_v be_v subject_a to_o it_o which_o you_o must_v the_o rather_o be_v persuade_v of_o he_o because_o romana_fw-la pope_n gelasius_n in_o a_o council_n of_o seventie_o bishop_n reprove_v his_o story_n as_o faulty_a which_o reproof_n your_o 6._o canus_n allow_v as_o just_a &_o give_v reason_n of_o it_o namely_o for_o 14._o his_o report_n of_o christ_n epistle_n to_o agbarus_n and_o common_o his_o avouch_v many_o thing_n by_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n whereas_o the_o fable_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o work_n of_o the_o other_o be_v reprove_v by_o romana_n the_o council_n hart._n these_o fault_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o canus_n do_v touch_v be_v in_o the_o history_n of_o eusebius_n which_o yet_o not_o only_a canus_n but_o the_o council_n also_o commend_v as_o not_o to_o be_v refuse_v altogether_o but_o that_o which_o i_o allege_v be_v in_o the_o chronicle_n of_o eusebius_n a_o book_n neither_o note_v so_o by_o the_o council_n and_o great_o praise_v by_o canus_n rainoldes_n the_o man_n be_v one_o who_o write_v they_o both_o and_o may_v be_v overséene_a as_o in_o the_o one_o so_o in_o the_o other_o yea_o 6._o canus_n himself_o who_o praise_v his_o chronicle_n yet_o praise_v it_o with_o this_o exception_n that_o neither_o all_o thing_n which_o eusebius_n there_o report_v be_v true_a but_o man_n may_v find_v some_o thing_n which_o may_v be_v worthy_o and_o true_o blame_v as_o for_o example_n that_o he_o write_v that_o sennacherib_n who_o besiege_v jerusalem_n and_o salmanassar_n who_o take_v samaria_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o man_n which_o thing_n to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 36._o s._n jerom_n have_v show_v now_o this_o which_o i_o stick_v at_o in_o the_o chronicle_n of_o eusebius_n be_v such_o a_o other_o oversight_n and_o may_v be_v as_o worthy_o reprove_v as_o that_o of_o canus_n because_o it_o be_v no_o less_o against_o the_o scripture_n then_o that_o for_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o peter_n have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n where_o he_o sit_v only_a seven_o year_n go_v to_o rome_n &_o preach_v the_o gospel_n there_o five_o and_o twenty_o year_n continue_a bishop_n of_o that_o city_n peter_n by_o this_o account_n shall_v have_v go_v to_o antioch_n about_o the_o four_o year_n after_o christ_n death_n and_o there_o abide_v seven_o year_n even_o till_o the_o second_o year_n of_o claudius_n the_o emperor_n in_o which_o he_o go_v to_o rome_n but_o the_o scripture_n show_v that_o paul_n who_o be_v ●_o not_o present_o convert_v after_o christ_n death_n yet_o ●8_o after_o three_o year_n find_v peter_n at_o jerusalem_fw-la &_o peter_n after_o that_o abode_n within_o 32._o the_o coast_n of_o jewrie_n first_o 38._o at_o lydda_n then_o 43._o at_o joppe_n then_o at_o 10.48_o caesarea_n then_o 11.2_o at_o jerusalem_n where_o 3._o herode_fw-la cast_v he_o into_o prison_n in_o the_o second_v or_o three_o year_n of_o claudius_n as_o it_o be_v likely_a for_o 23._o he_o die_v 10._o in_o the_o four_o when_o 22_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n be_v in_o the_o mean_a season_n both_o plant_v and_o water_v by_o other_o not_o by_o peter_n wherefore_o the_o former_a branch_n of_o that_o which_o eusebius_n report_v touch_v peter_n that_o he_o have_v sit_v seven_o year_n at_o antioch_n in_o the_o second_o year_n of_o claudius_n be_v flat_o contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n the_o late_a be_v as_o contrary_a that_o from_o that_o year_n forward_o he_o do_v sit_v at_o rome_n five_o and_o twenty_o year_n that_o be_v all_o his_o life_n time_n till_o he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n by_o nero._n for_o to_o grant_v the_o uttermost_a which_o may_v have_v any_o show_n of_o reason_n admit_v that_o he_o be_v cast_v by_o herode_fw-la into_o prison_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o claudius_n before_o which_o he_o can_v not_o for_o 5._o claudius_n give_v the_o kingdom_n of_o jewry_n to_o herode_fw-la when_o the_o angel_n have_v deliver_v he_o out_o of_o prison_n 12.17_o he_o go_v into_o a_o other_o place_n whether_o to_o rome_n or_o to_o antioch_n or_o perhaps_o to_o neither_o the_o scripture_n leave_v it_o uncertain_a but_o by_o the_o chronicle_n of_o eusebius_n either_o to_o antioch_n or_o to_o rome_n if_o he_o go_v to_o antioch_n and_o there_o abide_v some_o year_n before_o he_o come_v to_o rome_n then_o be_v the_o second_o year_n of_o claudius_n past_a and_o his_o abode_n at_o rome_n can_v not_o be_v five_o and_o twenty_o year_n now_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o go_v to_o antioch_n at_o that_o time_n or_o some_o other_o for_o 2.11_o the_o scripture_n witness_v that_o paul_n do_v there_o reprove_v he_o but_o if_o that_o be_v some_o other_o time_n and_o from_o his_o prison_n in_o jerusalem_n he_o go_v straight_o to_o rome_n yet_o neither_o can_v he_o so_o be_v five_o and_o twenty_o year_n there_o for_o after_o he_o come_v thither_o a_o time_n must_v be_v find_v wherein_o he_o be_v at_o antioch_n and_o a_o other_o time_n wherein_o he_o be_v at_o 5.13_o babylon_n &_o a_o other_o time_n wherein_o he_o be_v at_o 15.7_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o some_o year_n after_o that_o 20.22_o when_o paul_n write_v to_o the_o roman_n 16.3_o among_o the_o chief_a who_o he_o salute_v he_o name_v not_o peter_n and_o some_o year_n after_o that_o when_o paul_n 17._o come_v prisoner_n to_o rome_n when_o he_o 30._o abide_v there_o certain_a year_n when_o he_o philemon_n write_v many_o epistle_n thence_o peter_n be_v not_o mention_v nay_o those_o thing_n be_v mention_v which_o will_v be_v stain_n of_o his_o apostleship_n if_o he_o have_v be_v at_o rome_n for_o 4.11_o paul_n say_v of_o other_o these_o only_o be_v
epistle_n be_v ancient_a translate_v out_o of_o greek_a into_o latin_a by_o rufinus_n who_o live_v within_o four_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ._n and_o this_o touch_v linus_n the_o story_n of_o who_o succession_n you_o think_v dispro●eth_v it_o be_v think_v upon_o then_o &_o be_v answer_v by_o gaudent_fw-la rufinus_n for_o 〈◊〉_d his_o preface_n to_o the_o book_n entitle_v the_o recognition_n of_o clemens_n which_o he_o translate_v too_o some_o demand_n say_v he_o how_o when_o as_o linus_n and_o cletus_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o clemens_n himself_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o james_n say_v that_o the_o chair_n of_o teach_v be_v commit_v to_o he_o by_o peter_n whereof_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v that_o linus_n and_o cletus_n be_v in_o deed_n bishop_n in_o rome_n before_o clemens_n but_o while_o peter_n live_v that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o care_n of_o the_o bishoply_n charge_n &_o he_o may_v do_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o apostleship_n as_o it_o be_v find_v that_o also_o he_o do_v at_o caesarea_n where_o though_o be_v present_a himself_o yet_o he_o have_v a_o bishop_n who_o he_o have_v ordain_v namely_o zachaeus_n and_o thus_o may_v eke_v of_o these_o thing_n be_v think_v to_o be_v true_a both_o that_o they_o be_v reckon_v bishop_n before_o clemens_n and_o clemens_n nevertheless_o receive_v the_o chair_n of_o teach_v after_o the_o death_n of_o peter_n rainoldes_n the_o ancienty_n of_o the_o epistle_n be_v no_o warrant_n for_o it_o but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v false_a and_o forge_a seneca_n the_o epistle_n of_o seneca_n to_o paul_n of_o paul_n to_o seneca_n be_v no_o less_o ancient_a which_o yet_o have_v nothing_o worthy_a of_o either_o paul_n or_o seneca_n there_o have_v be_v very_o many_o misbegotten_a pamphlet_n wander_v abroad_o 15._o even_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n yea_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o the_o less_o have_v you_o to_o marvel_n if_o there_o be_v some_o miscreant_n who_o write_v in_o the_o name_n of_o clemens_n to_o james._n as_o for_o rufinus_n who_o translate_v it_o if_o yet_o he_o do_v translate_v it_o and_o some_o have_v not_o abuse_v 2._o he_o as_o well_o as_o clemens_n his_o judgement_n be_v not_o such_o but_o he_o may_v be_v deceive_v in_o a_o great_a matter_n which_o if_o you_o believe_v not_o on_o s._n rufinum_fw-la jeroms_n credit_n because_o he_o be_v his_o adversary_n look_v into_o these_o same_o work_n that_o he_o translate_v and_o you_o shall_v perceive_v it_o for_o the_o thing_n write_v in_o the_o recognition_n of_o clemens_n which_o you_o mention_v send_v to_o james_n also_o be_v the_o most_o of_o they_o uncertain_a many_o fabulous_a yea_o and_o some_o heretical_a as_o 2._o yourselves_o confess_v yet_o gaudent_fw-la rufinus_n judge_v it_o a_o hide_a treasure_n of_o wisdom_n &_o think_v he_o have_v a_o booty_n of_o it_o again_o in_o domini_fw-la that_o epistle_n wherein_o clemens_n make_v himself_o peter_n successor_n he_o certifi_v james_n that_o he_o send_v he_o before_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o peter_n a_o other_o book_n entitle_v clementis_fw-la the_o book_n of_o clemens_n touch_v thing_n which_o peter_n do_v in_o his_o journey_n now_o this_o iourney-booke_n have_v be_v so_o long_o so_o famous_o know_v for_o a_o rogue_n that_o he_o have_v not_o only_o be_v burn_v through_o the_o ●are_n of_o old_a by_o romana_fw-la sundry_a father_n and_o bishop_n in_o a_o council_n but_o also_o of_o late_a 2._o the_o college_n of_o inquisitor_n at_o rome_n have_v enroll_v he_o in_o the_o register_n of_o book_n condemn_v by_o the_o church_n wherefore_o he_o be_v a_o counterfeit_n that_o set_v abroad_o these_o bastard_n in_o the_o name_n of_o clemens_n howsoever_o rufinus_n think_v they_o of_o simplicity_n to_o be_v his_o own_o who_o they_o be_v name_v and_o with_o this_o persuasion_n be_v he_o move_v to_o think_v on_o some_o probability_n how_o that_o may_v be_v true_a which_o seem_v false_a therein_o of_o peter_n ordain_v clemens_n to_o be_v his_o successor_n when_o linus_n and_o cletus_n be_v bishop_n before_o he_o the_o only_a show_n whereof_o be_v gaudent_fw-la a_o report_n receyve_v by_o tradition_n he_o be_v fain_o to_o take_v it_o for_o lack_v of_o a_o better_a but_o he_o err_v in_o it_o either_o not_o know_v or_o not_o consider_v time_n and_o story_n for_o by_o his_o answer_n linus_n and_o cletus_n shall_v be_v no_o long_o bishop_n than_o while_o peter_n live_v and_o when_o he_o die_v clemens_n shall_v succeed_v he_o next_o immediate_o whereas_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o chronico_fw-la record_n of_o time_n that_o linus_n continue_v bishop_n eleven_o year_n after_o peter_n death_n and_o cletus_n twelve_o after_o linus_n before_o that_o clemens_n have_v the_o room_n which_o albeit_o 10._o turrian_n the_o jesuite_n do●_n gnaw_v upon_o as_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o make_v it_o away_o yet_o be_v the_o matter_n so_o manifest_a &_o certain_a that_o lino_n genebrard_n the_o fresh_a of_o your_o popish_a chronicler_n and_o pass_v all_o the_o rest_n as_o in_o skill_n so_o in_o zeal_n for_o the_o pope_n cause_n can_v not_o but_o set_v it_o down_o as_o true_a hart._n yet_o he_o say_v withal_o that_o peter_n do_v nominate_v clemens_n to_o succeed_v he_o but_o clemens_n give_v the_o room_n first_o to_o linus_n and_o then_o to_o cletus_n not_o so_o much_o of_o modesty_n as_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o lord_n decerperet_fw-la lest_o the_o example_n of_o this_o nomination_n shall_v pass_v to_o the_o posterity_n and_o derogate_v from_o the_o free_a providence_n of_o the_o church_n in_o choose_v of_o her_o own_o bishop_n rainoldes_n he_o say_v so_o in_o deed_n but_o who_o see_v not_o that_o this_o be_v devise_v to_o make_v story_n agree_v with_o the_o tale_n of_o clemens_n and_o by_o the_o way_n to_o countenance_v the_o election_n of_o pope_n which_o now_o the_o cardinal_n use_n for_o 1._o the_o book_n of_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n treat_v of_o that_o election_n affirm_v that_o peter_n nominate_v clemens_n to_o be_v his_o successor_n with_o this_o condition_n it_o be_v think_v if_o the_o cardinal_n will_v admit_v he_o but_o they_o nocere_fw-la perceive_v that_o the_o form_n of_o this_o nomination_n may_v great_o hurt_v the_o church_n in_o process_n of_o time_n do_v not_o accept_v of_o clemens_n but_o do_v choose_v linus_n and_o make_v he_o pope_n after_o peter_n howbeit_o clemens_n afterward_o be_v choose_v by_o the_o cardinal_n when_o linus_n and_o cletus_n be_v decease_v though_o genebrard_n in_o ●●●ming_v the_o fancy_n to_o his_o purpose_n do_v not_o so_o much_o follow_v the_o book_n of_o the_o ceremony_n as_o the_o gloze_n of_o the_o glossa_fw-la canon_n law_n which_o with_o better_a care_n of_o the_o pope_n credit_n say_v that_o pope_n clemens_n himself_o successorem_fw-la renounce_v the_o papacy_n consider_v that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o evil_a and_o pernicious_a thing_n for_o the_o example_n that_o any_o shall_v choose_v his_o own_o successor_n into_o such_o folly_n do_v you_o 〈◊〉_d yourselves_o to_o say_v that_o the_o bless_a apostle_n of_o christ_n s._n peter_n do_v ordain_v that_o which_o be_v pernicious_a for_o the_o example_n refuse_v by_o the_o pope_n mislike_v by_o the_o cardinal_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o church_n and_o all_o to_o maintain_v the_o epistle_n of_o clemens_n with_o the_o tale_n in_o it_o that_o peter_n make_v he_o his_o successor_n a_o thing_n so_o absurd_a that_o where_o it_o be_v mention_v in_o 1._o the_o canon_n law_n there_o be_v it_o n●●ed_v to_o ●e_a palea_fw-la chaff_n and_o 1._o contius_n a_o learned_a lawyer_n of_o your_o own_o do_v note_n upon_o that_o note_n that_o it_o be_v count_v chaff_n worthy_o commentitia_fw-la for_o it_o be_v all_o counterfeit_n and_o 101._o comestor_n the_o author_n of_o the_o scholastical_a history_n who_o live_v when_o the_o darkness_n of_o popery_n be_v gross_a refute_v and_o reject_v it_o as_o a_o mere_a forgery_n but_o whatsoever_o it_o ●e_v and_o ho●_n so_o ever_o ancient_a 〈◊〉_d the_o same_o it_o may_v be_v which_o s._n c●emens_n jerom_n say_v do_v bear_v the_o name_n of_o clemens_n and_o be_v reprove_v by_o old_a writer_n but_o be_v it_o what_o you_o will_v you_o confess_v yourself_o that_o to_o be_v untrue_a for_o proof_n whereof_o you_o cite_v it_o that_o clemens_n succeed_v peter_n and_o not_o linus_n wherefore_o see_v linus_n do_v succeed_v peter_n &_o that_o while_n peter_n live_v in_o the_o same_o sort_n as_o zachaeus_n do_v you_o say_v at_o caesarea_n &_o euodius_n at_o antioch_n the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n &_o of_o caesarea_n may_v claim_v as_o well_o the_o papacy_n by_o peter_n succession_n as_o may_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n hart._n yet_o by_o your_o own_o grant_n and_o the_o consent_n of_o history_n linus_n who_o succéede_v he_o in_o rome_n do_v outlive_v he_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v
or_o take_v infection_n at_o least_o from_o the_o fountain_n be_v corrupt_v now_o the_o fountain_n as_o it_o be_v whence_o the_o rest_n have_v draw_v it_o be_v the_o six_o council_n and_o he_o say_v that_o there_o the_o name_n of_o honorius_n be_v thrust_v in_o among_o the_o name_n of_o other_o heretic_n by_o malicious_a man_n of_o spite_n against_o the_o pope_n whereof_o he_o bring_v two_o proof_n one_o that_o anastasius_n witness_v it_o to_o have_v be_v so_o out_o of_o theophanes_n a_o other_o that_o the_o greek_n adventure_v sometime_o to_o corrupt_a book_n as_o 3._o the_o same_o council_n declare_v by_o their_o practice_n rainoldes_n the_o council_n declare_v that_o there_o be_v some_o copy_n of_o a_o former_a council_n that_o have_v be_v corrupt_v by_o heretic_n among_o the_o greek_n but_o as_o evil_a deal_n do_v still_o leave_v step_n behind_o it_o whereby_o it_o may_v be_v trace_v out_o 14._o their_o corruption_n be_v discover_v both_o by_o circumstance_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o by_o the_o manner_n of_o writing_n and_o by_o conference_n with_o other_o copy_n now_o in_o these_o place_n of_o the_o six_o council_n in_o which_o honorius_n be_v touch_v you_o can_v show_v no_o token_n of_o any_o such_o suspicion_n nay_o the_o token_n all_o be_v clear_a to_o the_o contrary_a even_o that_o which_o you_o allege_v of_o the_o greek_n convict_v to_o have_v corrupt_v book_n for_o if_o they_o have_v corrupt_v so_o much_o of_o the_o council_n in_o so_o many_o place_n it_o be_v very_o likely_a that_o they_o will_v have_v also_o corrupt_v those_o place_n wherein_o they_o be_v note_v and_o discredit_v for_o such_o corruption_n neither_o do_v anastasius_n report_v out_o of_o theophanes_n that_o the_o greek_n do_v so_o perhaps_o father_n robert_n do_v dream_v out_o of_o onuphrius_n that_o he_o have_v say_v so_o but_o although_o onuphrius_n say_v more_o in_o that_o point_n then_o truth_n do_v afford_v yet_o he_o say_v not_o that_o as_o for_o anastasius_n he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o say_v it_o that_o he_o gainesay_v it_o rather_o for_o 2._o in_o his_o story_n of_o the_o pope_n life_n he_o set_v honorius_n down_o among_o the_o heretic_n who_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o six_o council_n the_o same_o be_v confirm_v synod●_n in_o a_o old_a copy_n of_o the_o seven_o council_n which_o he_o translate_v out_o of_o greek_a and_o leave_v it_o in_o the_o pope_n library_n and_o at_o the_o eight_o council_n he_o be_v himself_o present_a and_o put_v it_o into_o latin_n most_o diligent_o and_o faithful_o there_o a_o pope_n do_v witness_v it_o to_o be_v short_a torrensis_n add_v moreover_o touch_v anastasius_n that_o if_o he_o have_v suspect_v the_o greek_n to_o have_v corrupt_v any_o of_o the_o place_n concern_v this_o matter_n he_o will_v have_v give_v warning_n no_o doubt_n of_o it_o also_o as_o he_o have_v do_v of_o other_o wherefore_o though_o ill_o dispose_v man_n among_o the_o greek_n corrupt_v book_n sometime_o yet_o the_o consent_n of_o copy_n chief_o of_o the_o latin_a synodi_fw-la write_v short_o after_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n &_o lay_v up_o at_o rome_n the_o coherence_n of_o thing_n the_o agreement_n of_o autour_n and_o circumstance_n of_o the_o story_n do_v make_v it_o very_o unlikely_a that_o they_o deal_v so_o with_o the_o six_o council_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o honorius_n it_o be_v pity_n that_o all_o evidence_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v disinherit_v because_o there_o be_v some_o evidence_n falsify_v by_o evil_a man_n but_o father_n robert_n deal_v as_o alexander_n the_o great_a who_o when_o he_o can_v not_o undoo_v the_o knot_n of_o gordius_n do_v cut_v it_o a_o sunder_o with_o his_o sword_n hart._n your_o knot_n of_o honorius_n i_o wiss_v be_v not_o so_o hard_a but_o that_o he_o may_v undoo_v it_o without_o this_o sword_n and_o he_o do_v so_o for_o 1._o he_o show_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o honorius_n to_o sergius_n on_o which_o the_o six_o council_n adjudge_v he_o a_o heretic_n be_v both_o wise_o write_v and_o errorem_fw-la sound_n without_o error_n wherefore_o though_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o he_o have_v sentence_n give_v against_o he_o by_o the_o council_n it_o follow_v not_o thereof_o that_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n they_o may_v condemn_v he_o unjust_o rainoldes_n take_v heed_n you_o be_v better_o let_v the_o knot_n alone_o then_o undoo_v it_o so_o this_o medicine_n will_v do_v more_o harm_n than_o the_o disease_n in_o deed_n a_o great_a 93._o cardinal_n on_o who_o you_o rely_v much_o will_v play_v fast_o and_o loose_a with_o it_o in_o such_o sort_n upon_o the_o speech_n of_o pope_n adrian_n who_o say_v that_o honorius_n be_v curse_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n after_o his_o death_n because_o he_o be_v accucuse_v of_o heresy_n for_o hereupon_o he_o gather_v that_o honorius_n be_v not_o a_o heretic_n while_o he_o live_v nor_o curse_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n but_o it_o follow_v straight_o in_o 7._o the_o speech_n of_o adrian_n which_o the_o cardinal_n cut_v off_o that_o unless_o the_o pope_n have_v consent_v to_o it_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n will_v not_o have_v condemn_v he_o moreover_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n show_v how_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n be_v also_o 〈…〉_o present_a and_o 18._o subscribe_v so_o that_o the_o sentence_n give_v against_o honorius_n be_v give_v by_o the_o council_n and_o by_o the_o pope_n himself_o not_o by_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n only_o wherefore_o if_o the_o epistle_n of_o honorius_n be_v sound_a on_o which_o as_o unsound_a he_o be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n then_o a_o general_a council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n do_v err_v in_o condemn_v he_o and_o if_o you_o grant_v this_o as_o you_o must_v by_o consequent_a you_o betray_v the_o strong_a castle_n of_o popery_n to_o save_v a_o captain_n honour_n for_o man_n of_o judgement_n will_v think_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n may_v be_v sound_a for_o which_o as_o unsound_a the_o council_n of_o trent_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n have_v condemn_v us._n they_o may_v condemn_v we_o unjust_o hart._n not_o so_o for_o they_o examine_v and_o know_v very_o perfect_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n as_o you_o call_v they_o rainoldes_n what_o and_o do_v the_o other_o condemn_v and_o curse_v the_o doctrine_n of_o honorius_n a_o pope_n and_o do_v they_o not_o examine_v and_o know_v it_o very_o perfect_o hart._n if_o this_o do_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o counsel_n credit_n father_n robert_n make_v a_o other_o answer_n yet_o which_o may_v be_v like_v better_a namely_o that_o the_o epistle_n be_v perhaps_o convict_v counterfeit_v not_o write_v by_o honorius_n but_o by_o some_o heretic_n in_o his_o name_n and_o so_o may_v the_o council_n condemn_v the_o doctrine_n just_o but_o err_v in_o the_o person_n rainoldes_n yet_o be_v this_o also_o a_o blemish_n of_o the_o council_n to_o condemn_v a_o pope_n in_o steed_n of_o a_o heretic_n but_o they_o have_v not_o deserve_v to_o be_v touch_v with_o it_o for_o the_o 12._o former_a epistle_n upon_o the_o proof_n whereof_o they_o do_v proceed_v to_o sentence_n they_o see_v it_o confer_v with_o the_o authentical_a latin_a copy_n &_o find_v it_o to_o agree_v beside_o that_o pyr●hum_fw-la the_o author_n who_o yourselves_o allege_v to_o clear_v honorius_n confess_v it_o to_o be_v honorius_n his_o own_o and_o he_o confess_v it_o then_o when_o the_o secretary_n of_o honorius_n who_o write_v it_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n be_v alive_a of_o good_a account_n and_o bare_a witness_n of_o it_o the_o 13._o late_a be_v approve_v to_o the_o council_n as_o the_o former_a though_o they_o stand_v less_o about_o it_o as_o nee_v less_o inquiry_n when_o he_o be_v now_o already_o cast_v but_o it_o have_v all_o presumption_n for_o it_o so_o probable_a that_o not_o as_o much_o as_o ●_z pighius_fw-la can_v suspect_v it_o though_o he_o suspect_v the_o other_o neither_o do_v i_o think_v that_o father_n robert_n think_v they_o in_o deed_n to_o be_v counterfeit_v but_o as_o a_o man_n that_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o drown_v do_v snatch_v at_o every_o bulrush_n to_o save_v his_o life_n if_o it_o may_v be_v so_o he_o see_v the_o pope_n make_v subject_a to_o heresy_n by_o the_o six_o general_a council_n do_v catch_v at_o every_o fancy_n whereby_o he_o have_v some_o hope_n to_o help_v he_o the_o fancy_n of_o pighius_fw-la be_v that_o the_o council_n do_v not_o condemn_v honorius_n the_o copy_n of_o it_o be_v corrupt_v 2._o andradius_fw-la check_v that_o and_o say_v he_o be_v condemn_v but_o the_o council_n err_v in_o condemn_v he_o as_o judge_v he_o to_o err_v who_o do_v not_o synod_n torrensis_n vari_v from_o they_o both_o and_o come_v in_o with_o a_o fine_a quirk_n to_o weet_v that_o pope_n honorius_n do_v consent_n
lesser_a donation_n of_o constantine_n which_o give_v rome_n only_a the_o other_o the_o great_a which_o give_v italy_n also_o with_o the_o country_n of_o the_o west_n and_o whether_o of_o they_o be_v it_o that_o genebrard_n defend_v hart._n whether_o of_o they_o say_v you_o or_o what_o skill_v that_o rainoldes_n it_o skill_v very_o much_o for_o the_o lesser_a seem_v somewhat_o to_o discredit_v the_o report_n of_o the_o great_a as_o it_o be_v observe_v by_o one_o of_o the_o best_a witness_n that_o genebrard_n have_v i_o mean_v 11._o nauclerus_fw-la who_o have_v show_v that_o constantine_n leave_v italy_n and_o other_o kingdom_n of_o the_o west_n to_o his_o son_n by_o testament_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o the_o decree_n which_o say_v he_o give_v they_o to_o the_o pope_n probare_fw-la be_v chaff_n as_o the_o lawyer_n call_v it_o and_o prove_v nothing_o whereto_o say_v he_o the_o decretal_a make_v not_o a_o little_a which_o treat_v of_o constantine_n donation_n speak_v only_o of_o the_o donation_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o italy_n and_o other_o province_n but_o whether_o this_o report_n of_o the_o lesser_a in_o the_o decretal_n discredit_v the_o great_a in_o the_o decree_n or_o no_o the_o great_a be_v so_o brainless_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o man_n that_o have_v sense_n and_o reason_n that_o not_o your_o historian_n only_o do_v nip_n it_o as_o 3._o otho_n frisingensis_n sept_fw-fr and_o platina_n and_o 24._o krantzius_n but_o also_o ●_z and_o divine_n as_o 2._o cardinal_n cusanus_fw-la and_o apost_n hieronymus_n paulus_n and_o donat_fw-la laurentius_n valla_n yea_o apost_n pope_n pius_n himself_o have_v write_v purposely_o he_o will_v defend_v the_o lesser_a for_o he_o say_v that_o constantine_n do_v give_v rome_n to_o sylvester_n rome_n that_o be_v the_o city_n and_o not_o all_o the_o western_a empire_n of_o rome_n hart._n his_o word_n indeed_o do_v seem_v so_o and_o i_o think_v he_o mean_v not_o to_o defend_v the_o great_a rainoldes_n think_v nay_o you_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o he_o mean_v not_o for_o in_o the_o same_o place_n upon_o the_o word_n that_o you_o rehearse_v i_o say_v he_o have_v always_o deny_v this_o consequence_n constantini_n somewhat_o be_v forge_v and_o add_v to_o the_o donation_n of_o constantine_n therefore_o all_o be_v forge_v for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o constantine_n give_v many_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o acc●ssis●e_fw-la more_o thing_n a_o great_a deal_n have_v come_v unto_o it_o other_o whence_o either_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o prince_n and_o rich_a man_n or_o by_o the_o testament_n of_o the_o godly_a or_o by_o the_o purchase_n of_o pope_n by_o exchange_n and_o so_o forth_o and_o the_o dispensation_n and_o providence_n of_o god_n so_o that_o in_o genebrards_n judgement_n pope_n sylvester_n and_o his_o successor_n have_v get_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o by_o other_o mean_n then_o by_o constantine_n donation_n but_o they_o have_v not_o get_v more_o than_o the_o great_a donation_n of_o constantine_n in_o the_o decree_n do_v give_v they_o for_o it_o do_v give_v they_o all_o the_o province_n place_n and_o city_n of_o italy_n and_o other_o country_n of_o the_o west_n in_o genebrards_n judgement_n therefore_o the_o great_a donation_n of_o constantine_n be_v forge_v and_o that_o which_o he_o defend_v must_v be_v the_o lesser_a only_o hart._n the_o lesser_a only_o be_v it_o what_o gather_v you_o thereoff_v rainoldes_n i_o gather_v that_o genebrard_n deal_v like_o himself_o when_o he_o say_v that_o constantine_n donation_n be_v prove_v by_o photius_n the_o greek_a patriarch_n and_o eugubinus_n in_o two_o book_n for_o eugubinus_n write_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o great_a donation_n of_o constantine_n avouch_v 1._o that_o he_o give_v not_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n alone_o unto_o the_o pope_n no_o nor_o the_o country_n of_o italy_n but_o the_o whole_a west_n even_o the_o western_a empire_n in_o so_o much_o that_o 2._o he_o name_v particular_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n of_o france_n of_o spain_n of_o arragon_n of_o portugal_n of_o denmark_n of_o norway_n swethland_n boheme_n hungary_n dacia_n rustia_n croatia_n dalmatia_n sardinia_n and_o corsica_n and_o say_v that_o they_o be_v all_o subject_n to_o the_o pope_n by_o right_a of_o that_o donation_n as_o for_o the_o patriarch_n photius_n he_o speak_v not_o a_o word_n of_o any_o donation_n that_o which_o genebrard_n mean_v be_v in_o one_o 1._o balsamon_n comment_v on_o photius_n and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o that_o eugubinus_n write_v for_o what_o think_v you_o now_o of_o he_o who_o say_v that_o eugubinus_n and_o photius_n the_o greek_a patriarch_n do_v manifest_o prove_v that_o donation_n to_o be_v true_a which_o himself_o confess_v to_o be_v false_a and_o forge_a hart._n but_o the_o next_o writer_n who_o he_o allege_v namely_o zosimus_n be_v fit_a for_o his_o purpose_n as_o speak_v of_o the_o lesser_a donation_n precise_o for_o 2._o constantine_n say_v he_o depart_v out_o of_o rome_n and_o remove_v thence_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o constantinople_n because_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v mislike_v of_o the_o roman_n for_o alter_v of_o religion_n rainoldes_n what_o do_v this_o prove_v that_o constantine_n give_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n unto_o the_o pope_n because_o he_o depart_v from_o rome_n to_o constantinople_n hart._n as_o genebrard_n conclude_v of_o it_o for_o igitur_fw-la he_o depart_v to_o who_o not_o to_o the_o senate_n not_o to_o the_o people_n for_o that_o have_v no_o man_n write_v neither_o do_v the_o senate_n or_o people_n ever_o claim_v it_o to_o the_o pope_n therefore_o who_o since_o that_o time_n possess_v and_o keep_v it_o as_o his_o own_o have_v old_a record_n and_o evidence_n and_o revenue_n of_o it_o rainoldes_n the_o wit_n of_o a_o sophister_n as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v king_n henry_n depart_v from_o the_o city_n of_o london_n unto_o windsor_n castle_n and_o remove_v the_o court_n thither_o he_o depart_v to_o who_o not_o to_o the_o alderman_n not_o to_o the_o citizen_n for_o no_o man_n say_v so_o neither_o do_v the_o alderman_n or_o citizen_n ever_o claim_v it_o to_o the_o bishop_n therefore_o who_o since_o that_o time_n possess_v and_o keep_v it_o as_o his_o own_o have_v old_a record_n and_o evidence_n and_o revenue_n of_o it_o hart._n nay_o that_o be_v a_o lie_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n possess_v the_o city_n as_o his_o own_o since_o that_o time_n rainoldes_n even_o so_o be_v the_o other_o for_o the_o emperor_n possess_v rome_n four_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o time_n that_o constantine_n depart_v to_o constantinople_n as_o your_o own_o italiae_fw-la sigonius_n show_v in_o his_o story_n hart._n but_o king_n henry_n govern_v still_o the_o city_n of_o london_n by_o the_o lord_n mayor_n as_o prince_n have_v be_v wont_a to_o do_v rainoldes_n so_o the_o emperor_n govern_v too_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n rom._n by_o a_o lord_n deputie_n yea_o genebrard_n may_v easy_o have_v find_v in_o his_o vrbis_fw-la zosimus_n the_o one_o of_o those_o deputy_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v emperor_n if_o he_o can_v show_v by_o zosimus_n that_o a_o pope_n have_v do_v so_o what_o a_o proof_n be_v that_o of_o constantine_n donation_n hart._n the_o pope_n enjoy_v not_o a_o while_n the_o full_a power_n yet_o have_v they_o right_a unto_o it_o howbeit_o ammianus_n marcellinus_n show_v they_o have_v the_o power_n too_o as_o genebrard_n declare_v after_o but_o first_o he_o confirm_v their_o right_n out_o of_o s._n damasus_n rainoldes_n out_o of_o damasus_n how_o hart._n s._n damasus_n who_o see_v constantine_n have_v write_v of_o that_o donation_n as_o even_o the_o centurie-writer_n affirm_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o the_o four_o centurie_n rainoldes_n two_o lie_n with_o one_o breath_n for_o neither_o have_v damasus_n write_v of_o it_o nor_o do_v the_o centurie-writer_n affirm_v that_o he_o have_v nay_o they_o affirm_v the_o contrary_n for_o in_o primatu_fw-la the_o very_a place_n that_o genebrard_n allege_v they_o say_v that_o neither_o historian_n have_v make_v mention_n of_o it_o such_o as_o be_v eusebius_n eutropius_n rufinus_n socrates_n theodoret_n euagrius_n paulus_n diaconus_fw-la beda_n orosius_n zonaras_n nicephorus_n and_o the_o like_a nor_o they_o who_o write_v the_o life_n of_o emperor_n or_o of_o pope_n as_o jerom_n and_o damasus_n though_o yet_o he_o speak_v somewhat_o of_o thing_n give_v by_o constantine_n nor_o other_o famous_a doctor_n who_o monument_n be_v extant_a as_o athanasius_n basil_n ambrose_n optatus_n gregory_n nyssen_n gregory_n nazianzene_n austin_n and_o chrysostome_n nor_o the_o pope_n themselves_o when_o they_o be_v to_o prove_v their_o supremacy_n in_o counsel_n do_v speak_v a_o word_n of_o that_o donation_n which_o they_o will_v then_o have_v cast_v forth_o as_o shipman_n do_v the_o sacred_a ancre_fw-fr in_o great_a peril_n hart._n the_o word_n
to_o the_o emperor_n by_o who_o he_o have_v the_o popedom_n restore_v to_o the_o empire_n the_o thing_n which_o either_o constantine_n or_o charles_n give_v unto_o the_o church_n or_o justinian_n confirm_v before_o he_o or_o arithpert_a the_o lombard_n king_n bestow_v on_o it_o now_o we_o have_v set_v down_o before_o out_o of_o krantzius_n in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n of_o the_o four_o book_n of_o his_o story_n of_o saxony_n the_o copy_n of_o the_o letter_n by_o which_o leo_n restore_v they_o thus_o far_o the_o centurie-writer_n wherein_o first_o they_o speak_v not_o of_o constantine_n donation_n either_o the_o great_a or_o the_o lesser_a but_o in_o general_a only_o of_o thing_n that_o he_o give_v which_o may_v be_v other_o thing_n and_o not_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n second_o they_o say_v not_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o give_v and_o charles_n do_v confirm_v but_o the_o thing_n which_o either_o he_o or_o charles_n give_v that_o it_o may_v be_v charles_n donation_n and_o not_o he_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o they_o say_v three_o ecclesiae_fw-la their_o very_a word_n be_v the_o word_n of_o krantzius_n who_o they_o allege_v and_o 10._o quote_v and_o krantzius_n do_v speak_v they_o by_o way_n of_o a_o jest_n for_o neither_o be_v constantine_n name_v in_o the_o letter_n in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o thankfulness_n be_v show_v by_o pope_n leo_n and_o 11._o upon_o the_o letter_n he_o frame_v a_o reproof_n of_o constantine_n donation_n so_o that_o to_o prove_v it_o by_o those_o word_n of_o krantzius_n be_v as_o if_o the_o pharisee_n shall_v prove_v their_o tradition_n by_o that_o speech_n of_o christ_n ●_o well_o do_v you_o reject_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v observe_v your_o own_o tradition_n four_o the_o centurie-writer_n do_v not_o as_o much_o as_o mention_v either_o lewes_n or_o pipine_v neither_o here_o nor_o octavi_fw-la after_o where_o they_o mention_v otho_n final_o not_o one_o of_o all_o that_o be_v mention_v be_v report_v by_o they_o to_o have_v confirm_v that_o donation_n no_o not_o justinian_n of_o who_o the_o show_n be_v great_a as_o genebrard_n do_v cite_v their_o word_n that_o he_o confirm_v it_o after_o a_o hundred_o year_n hart._n yet_o their_o own_o word_n be_v that_o justinian_n confirm_v thing_n unto_o the_o church_n rainoldes_n and_o so_o justinian_n do_v for_o praescriptione_n his_o constitution_n which_o genebrard_n allege_v out_o of_o his_o authentike_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v enjoy_v the_o prescription_n of_o a_o hundred_o year_n have_v this_o force_n that_o whereas_o thirty_o year_n prescription_n do_v hold_v against_o the_o land_n and_o possession_n of_o other_o in_o action_n and_o suit_n of_o law_n no_o less_o than_o a_o hundred_o shall_v hold_v against_o the_o land_n and_o possession_n of_o other_o in_o action_n and_o suit_n of_o law_n no_o less_o than_o a_o hundred_o shall_v hold_v against_o the_o land_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n though_o the_o centurie-writer_n mean_v by_o confirm_v the_o assure_v of_o those_o thing_n that_o any_o way_n come_v from_o justinian_n as_o appear_v by_o 10._o the_o letter_n which_o they_o refer_v themselves_o unto_o but_o genebrard_n do_v take_v the_o advantage_n of_o confirmavit_fw-la the_o word_n and_o help_v it_o with_o add_v annis_fw-la a_o hundred_o year_n after_o which_o fit_v some_o what_o roundly_o the_o time_n that_o justinian_n reign_v after_o constantine_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o the_o term_n of_o a_o hundred_o year_n in_o justinians_n constitution_n may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v respect_n to_o constantine_n donation_n in_o the_o which_o deal_v he_o do_v notorious_a injury_n not_o only_o to_o they_o but_o to_o justinian_n also_o to_o justinian_n by_o lay_v on_o he_o a_o lewd_a slander_v that_o he_o do_v confirm_v yea_o confirm_v by_o law_n a_o surmise_a donation_n devise_v against_o all_o law_n to_o they_o by_o put_v word_n of_o falsehood_n in_o their_o mouth_n nor_o make_v they_o only_o false_a witness_n but_o also_o foolish_a as_o if_o they_o have_v think_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o that_o constitution_n whereof_o the_o constitution_n have_v no_o word_n at_o all_o and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o iniquity_n he_o add_v that_o ●eferunt_fw-la they_o report_v it_o use_v those_o very_a word_n to_o persuade_v the_o credulous_a thereby_o as_o he_o have_v you_o that_o constantine_n donation_n can_v be_v doubt_v of_o since_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n a_o hundred_o year_n after_o as_o our_o own_o man_n in_o their_o century_n do_v grant_v hart._n perhaps_o there_o be_v some_o other_o place_n in_o justinian_n that_o make_v proof_n of_o it_o for_o while_o i_o peruse_v the_o table_n of_o that_o book_n of_o the_o authentike_n which_o be_v lend_v i_o to_o search_v out_o this_o in_o i_o be_v thereby_o direct_v to_o a_o place_n in_o justinian_n where_n constantine_n donation_n be_v prove_v most_o plain_o to_o weet_v in_o gloss_n sing_v secundum_fw-la bald_n in_o l._n 2._o §_o cum_fw-la urbem_fw-la ff_n de_fw-fr offic_n praefect_n vrbis_fw-la rainoldes_n it_o be_v not_o plain_o prove_v there_o but_o bare_o say_v and_o say_v not_o in_o the_o text_n but_o in_o the_o gloze_n only_o nor_o in_o the_o gloze_n upon_o justinian_n but_o the_o digest_v and_o that_o without_o all_o ground_n either_o of_o any_o autour_fw-fr of_o the_o digest_v or_o of_o justinian_n hart._n but_o in_o the_o gloze_n upon_o justinian_n himself_o even_o in_o the_o authentike_n there_o be_v a_o other_o place_n where_o the_o same_o question_n be_v handle_v pro_fw-la and_o con_v and_o there_o although_o he_o say_v that_o constantine_n can_v make_v no_o such_o donation_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la yet_o he_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o he_o make_v it_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la rainoldes_n yet_o he_o deny_v not_o and_o donatio_fw-la he_o affirm_v not_o but_o leave_v it_o as_o he_o find_v it_o why_o do_v you_o trifle_v so_o with_o the_o glosewriter_n who_o though_o he_o have_v affirm_v the_o donation_n of_o constantine_n do_v that_o prove_v the_o point_n avouch_v by_o genebrard_n that_o justinian_n confirm_v it_o if_o i_o have_v think_v that_o you_o will_v make_v such_o account_n of_o the_o word_n of_o lawyer_n i_o can_v have_v allege_v man_n skilfull_a of_o antiquity_n than_o all_o the_o glose-writer_n against_o that_o tale_n of_o constantine_n for_o not_o only_o such_o as_o paparum_fw-la carolus_n molinaeus_n who_o you_o may_v perhaps_o suspect_v for_o his_o religion_n do_v write_v against_o it_o and_o discredit_v it_o but_o also_o that_o worthy_a and_o most_o learned_a lawyer_n 19_o andrea_n alciatus_fw-la disprove_v it_o by_o eusebius_n theodoret_n cassiodore_n ammianus_n marcellinus_n and_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o historian_n and_o max._n remundus_n rufus_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o pope_n against_o molinaeus_n which_o 7._o sanders_n praise_v great_o do_v allow_v the_o same_o that_o alciatus_fw-la write_v of_o it_o but_o whatsoever_o lawyer_n think_v of_o the_o donation_n either_o for_o the_o fact_n or_o for_o the_o right_n of_o it_o you_o see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o confirm_v by_o justinian_n as_o you_o be_v bear_v in_o hand_n hart._n yes_o i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o genebrard_n be_v able_a to_o bring_v more_o for_o himself_o herein_o then_o i_o have_v see_v or_o can_v find_v in_o justinian_n rainoldes_n neither_o make_v i_o doubt_v but_o if_o he_o can_v have_v bring_v more_o his_o pontacum_fw-la ten-yeare_n study_v spend_v upon_o his_o chronicle_n will_v have_v interlace_v it_o inthe_n mean_v season_n whether_o he_o be_v able_a to_o bring_v more_o or_o no_o you_o can_v deny_v but_o he_o have_v allege_v justinian_n untrue_o for_o that_o which_o he_o have_v bring_v hart._n but_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o writer_n who_o he_o do_v allege_v no_o doubt_n he_o do_v allege_v they_o true_o s._n gregory_n s._n isidore_n nauclerus_fw-la photius_n nicephorus_n s._n jerom_n iuo_o gratian_n picernus_n rabbi_n abraham_n and_o aben_n ezra_n rainoldes_n he_o do_v allege_v they_o true_o i_o grant_v the_o most_o of_o they_o but_o do_v they_o prove_v the_o point_n for_o which_o he_o do_v allege_v they_o hart._n yea_o and_o that_o direct_o as_o by_o his_o word_n you_o shall_v perceive_v s._n gregory_n about_o the_o six_o hundred_o year_n of_o christ_n do_v show_v in_o his_o epistle_n that_o the_o church_n have_v ample_a land_n and_o possession_n far_o and_o wide_o through_o the_o west_n at_o the_o which_o time_n s._n isidore_n in_o his_o story_n as_o nauclerus_fw-la cit_v in_o the_o eleven_o age_n of_o his_o chronicle_n constantine_n say_v he_o do_v yield_v the_o city_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o imperial_a ornament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o crown_n and_o the_o white_a palfrey_n on_o the_o which_o he_o ride_v altogether_o as_o photius_n of_o constantinople_n though_o otherwise_o a_o enemy_n of_o the_o see_v
you_o grant_v at_o least_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n by_o s._n jeroms_n judgement_n rainoldes_n or_o at_o least_o you_o take_v it_o though_o neither_o i_o do_v grant_v it_o nor_o be_v it_o prove_v by_o s._n jerom._n but_o this_o be_v prove_v and_o i_o grant_v it_o that_o he_o do_v not_o err_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o trinity_n when_o damasus_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n hart._n when_o damasus_n be_v bishop_n why_o do_v you_o so_o restrain_v it_o s._n jeroms_n word_n be_v general_a i_o be_o join_v in_o communion_n unto_o your_o holiness_n that_o be_v to_o peter_n chair_n i_o know_v that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o that_o rock_n behold_v to_o peter_n chair_n he_o speak_v not_o to_o damasus_n as_o in_o respect_n of_o damasus_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o chair_n and_o so_o of_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o what_o he_o say_v to_o one_o belong_v to_o they_o all_o rainoldes_n if_o you_o set_v his_o word_n upon_o such_o tenter_n they_o will_v never_o hold_v for_o fortunatianus_n himself_o report_v that_o the_o next_o bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o damasus_n liberius_n by_o name_n subscribe_v to_o the_o arian_n heresy_n hart._n s._n jerom_n report_v so_o but_o he_o may_v be_v deceive_v by_o some_o misreporte_n for_o he_o can_v say_v nothing_o more_o of_o that_o matter_n than_o what_o he_o have_v by_o hearsay_n rainoldes_n but_o see_v that_o he_o live_v so_o near_o to_o that_o time_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o love_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o yet_o do_v report_v this_o matter_n of_o liberius_n and_o report_v it_o constant_o not_o only_o in_o his_o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n but_o in_o euseb_n his_o chronicle_n also_o it_o be_v more_o likely_a that_o he_o do_v both_o know_v and_o testify_v the_o truth_n than_o ●_o pontacus_n who_o make_v your_o exception_n against_o he_o or_o any_o man_n that_o live_v now_o hart._n why_o will_v not_o you_o credit_v a_o man_n that_o live_v now_o in_o any_o thing_n against_o s._n jerom_n rainoldes_n yes_o if_o he_o bring_v i_o good_a reason_n to_o disprove_v he_o hart._n and_o pontacus_n do_v so_o for_o he_o show_v that_o 74._o basil_n 3._o ambrose_n and_o 75._o epiphanius_n do_v call_v liberius_n a_o bless_a man_n and_o that_o 2._o athanasius_n do_v free_a he_o from_o the_o spot_n of_o arianisme_n rainoldes_n basil_n ambrose_n and_o epiphanius_n do_v call_v liberius_n a_o bless_a man_n what_o therefore_o he_o subscribe_v not_o to_o the_o arian_n heresy_n then_o you_o may_v say_v that_o peter_n do_v not_o deny_v christ._n for_o humil●t_fw-la basil_n praefat_fw-la ambrose_n and_o anchorat_a epiphanius_n do_v call_v peter_n a_o bless_a man_n they_o be_v bless_v who_o repent_v themselves_o of_o their_o sin_n as_o peter_n do_v of_o his_o denial_n and_o so_o may_v 12._o liberius_n do_v of_o his_o subscription_n as_o for_o 2._o athanasius_n though_o he_o say_v that_o liberius_n condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o arian_n and_o therefore_o suffer_v banishment_n yet_o he_o say_v withal_o that_o he_o continue_v not_o in_o suffer_v banishment_n to_o the_o end_n but_o agent_n through_o fear_n of_o death_n subscribe_v to_o that_o heresy_n with_o his_o hand_n though_o with_o his_o heart_n he_o be_v still_o against_o it_o thus_o even_o athanasius_n who_o live_v at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o liberius_n and_o know_v his_o state_n well_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o subscribe_v though_o judge_v most_o friendly_a both_o for_o his_o own_o sake_n and_o the_o cause_n that_o he_o consent_v not_o but_o pontificali_fw-la damasus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o succéede_v liberius_n and_o may_v know_v the_o matter_n better_o than_o athanasius_n do_v write_v that_o liberius_n do_v consent_v also_o to_o constantius_n the_o arian_n hart._n although_o this_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o damasus_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o damasus_n write_v it_o for_o libe●●j_fw-la carranza_n note_v that_o there_o be_v many_o who_o doubt_v of_o that_o story_n and_o secund_a onuphrius_n a_o man_n very_o skilful_a of_o antiquity_n chief_o of_o the_o roman_a discredit_v both_o the_o report_n and_o the_o autour_fw-fr of_o it_o say_v that_o anastasius_n the_o keeper_n of_o the_o pope_n library_n be_v as_o he_o think_v the_o first_o who_o believe_v it_o and_o thrust_v it_o into_o the_o book_n of_o damasus_n as_o many_o other_o thing_n beside_o rainoldes_n what_o anastasius_n do_v i_o know_v not_o but_o if_o he_o stuff_v damasus_n with_o any_o thing_n of_o his_o own_o it_o be_v belike_o in_o such_o thing_n rather_o as_o advance_v then_o impeach_v the_o pope_n credit_n howbeit_o if_o onuphrius_n in_o that_o he_o deny_v liberius_n be_v a_o arian_n do_v mean_a that_o he_o subscribe_v not_o to_o the_o arian_n heresy_n and_o that_o this_o report_n come_v first_o from_o anastasius_n what_o answer_v he_o then_o to_o jerom_n and_o athanasius_n and_o ●●_o sozomen_n and_o 〈◊〉_d marcellinus_n in_o effect_n too_o who_o write_v it_o all_o with_o one_o consent_n the_o young_a of_o they_o a_o hundred_o year_n before_o anastasius_n be_v bear_v as_o for_o carranzas_n note_n that_o there_o be_v many_o who_o doubt_v of_o that_o story_n he_o must_v show_v who_o they_o be_v and_o what_o ground_n of_o doubt_n they_o have_v or_o else_o those_o many_o may_v be_v such_o as_o himself_o and_o onuphrius_n who_o doubt_v may_v not_o prejudice_n the_o credit_n of_o historian_n that_o write_v a_o thousand_o year_n before_o they_o chief_o if_o they_o have_v no_o sure_a ground_n than_o carranza_n who_o to_o disprove_v the_o story_n allege_v that_o liberius_n write_v one_o epistle_n to_o athana●ius_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n against_o the_o arian_n and_o another_o to_o all_o bishop_n exhort_v they_o to_o constancy_n which_o reason_n be_v so_o poor_a that_o your_o own_o liberij_fw-la joverius_n a_o paris_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n reherse_v they_o by_o occasion_n have_v withal_o refute_v they_o but_o see_v to_o what_o miserable_a shift_n you_o be_v drive_v to_o uphold_v the_o pride_n of_o the_o man_n of_o rome_n because_o it_o be_v a_o stain_n unto_o his_o supremacy_n if_o his_o predecessor_n liberius_n subscribe_v against_o the_o catholic_a faith_n therefore_o you_o rather_o choose_v to_o deny_v it_o and_o how_o first_o the_o authority_n of_o jerom_n be_v allege_v affirm_v it_o in_o his_o chronicle_n your_o ●_o pighius_fw-la do_v answer_v that_o some_o have_v interlace_v those_o word_n into_o his_o chronicle_n through_o ignorance_n or_o fraud_n when_o this_o answer_n seem_v hard_a because_o jerom_n have_v other_o where_o affirm_v it_o also_o your_o pontacus_n to_o help_v it_o repli_v that_o jerom_n can_v say_v nought_o thereof_o but_o what_o he_o have_v by_o hearsay_n when_o proof_n of_o this_o hearsay_n be_v make_v out_o of_o damasus_n your_o onuphrius_n suppose_v he_o to_o be_v corrupt_v by_o anastasius_n the_o keeper_n of_o the_o pope_n library_n when_o sozomen_n a_o greek_a writer_n confirm_v damasus_n and_o jerom_n your_o christophorson_n who_o translate_v he_o do_v make_v he_o hold_v his_o peace_n or_o rather_o witness_v to_o the_o contrary_n for_o where_o he_o say_v in_o his_o own_o tongue_n that_o the_o emperor_n 〈◊〉_d compel_v liberius_n to_o subscribe_v he_o say_v by_o your_o translator_n the_o emperor_n compelle●e_n assay_v to_o compel_v he_o and_o where_o he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o own_o tongue_n that_o certain_a arian_n bishop_n 〈◊〉_d procure_v he_o to_o consent_v he_o say_v by_o your_o translator_n consentiat_fw-la they_o endeavour_v that_o he_o shall_v consent_v when_o far_a marcellinus_n be_v find_v to_o agree_v with_o sozomen_n report_n your_o 3._o genebrard_n see_v jerom_n approve_v by_o they_o both_o do_v raze_v out_o that_o of_o ponta●us_n that_o jerom_o can_v say_v nought_o thereof_o but_o by_o hearsay_n and_o do_v assalt_n he_o with_o the_o father_n wherein_o beside_o they_o who_o you_o allege_v out_o of_o pontacus_n he_o cit_v socrates_n and_o theodoret_n 11._o socrates_n declare_v that_o liberius_n be_v no_o arian_n in_o the_o time_n of_o valens_n the_o emperor_n as_o though_o this_o be_v a_o proof_n that_o he_o subscribe_v not_o to_o the_o arian_n heresy_n in_o the_o time_n of_o constantius_n 6._o theodoret_n avouch_v that_o the_o west_n be_v always_o free_a form_n arianisme_n which_o be_v less_o to_o the_o purpose_n theodoret_n speak_v general_o as_o for_o the_o most_o part_n and_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o east_n by_o way_n of_o comparison_n for_o himself_o have_v show_v 5._o before_o that_o auxentius_n a_o western_a bishop_n be_v a_o arian_n now_o for_o athanasius_n who_o be_v the_o most_o ancient_a witness_n of_o this_o matter_n and_o of_o such_o valour_n that_o your_o 2._o andradius_fw-la can_v not_o but_o yield_v himself_o unto_o he_o yet_o genebrard_n &_o pontacus_n think_v it_o good_a policy_n to_o name_v he_o as_o gainsay_v
to_o win_v you_o to_o the_o truth_n do_v bring_v you_o the_o confession_n of_o your_o own_o man_n who_o witness_v a_o truth_n hart._n a_o truth_n why_o will_v you_o grant_v we_o that_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n come_v in_o by_o tradition_n if_o we_o will_v grant_v you_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n rainoldes_n by_o tradition_n i_o if_o you_o mean_v tradition_n as_o s._n 1.18_o peter_n do_v where_o he_o teach_v christian_n that_o they_o be_v redeem_v from_o their_o vain_a conversation_n traditionis_fw-la of_o the_o tradition_n of_o their_o father_n hart._n you_o be_v dispose_v to_o play_v with_o your_o own_o fancy_n you_o know_v my_o meaning_n well_o enough_o will_v you_o grant_v that_o it_o come_v in_o by_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n rainoldes_n i_o shall_v play_v in_o deed_n with_o your_o own_o fancy_n if_o i_o shall_v grant_v you_o that_o hart._n but_o they_o who_o you_o allege_v do_v say_v that_o it_o do_v so_o as_o yourself_o have_v show_v rainoldes_n but_o i_o will_v prove_v that_o they_o speak_v no_o true_a in_o that_o than_o you_o have_v do_v in_o the_o other_o hart._n but_o what_o a_o injury_n be_v this_o to_o press_v i_o with_o their_o former_a word_n of_o the_o scripture_n whereas_o yourself_o believe_v not_o the_o late_a of_o tradition_n rainoldes_n what_o think_v you_o of_o s._n paul_n do_v he_o believe_v those_o thing_n which_o the_o heathenish_a poet_n do_v write_v of_o god_n and_o goddess_n bacchus_n diana_n minerva_n mercury_n hart._n he_o do_v not_o what_o then_o rainoldes_n yet_o 17.28_o he_o allege_v they_o to_o persuade_v the_o athenian_n that_o in_o god_n we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v what_o a_o injury_n be_v that_o to_o press_v the_o athenian_n with_o poet_n word_n of_o god_n whereas_o himself_o beléeve_v not_o their_o word_n of_o god_n and_o goddess_n hart._n the_o poet_n may_v say_v well_o and_o do_v in_o the_o former_a though_o in_o the_o late_a they_o miss_v rainoldes_n now_o will_v you_o deal_v as_o friendly_a with_o i_o as_o with_o s._n paul_n his_o case_n and_o i_o be_v coosin_n hart._n nay_o you_o in_o the_o self_n same_o sentence_n of_o our_o man_n cull_v out_o a_o piece_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o a_o other_o piece_n of_o it_o you_o allow_v not_o rainoldes_n even_o so_o do_v s._n paul_n for_o that_o which_o he_o avouch_v out_o of_o their_o own_o poet_n the_o meaning_n of_o it_o be_v in_o jupiter_fw-la sundry_a the_o very_a word_n in_o 〈◊〉_d aratus_n they_o speak_v it_o of_o jupiter_n who_o be_v a_o wicked_a man_n but_o think_v of_o they_o to_o be_v god_n s._n paul_n allow_v not_o their_o error_n in_o the_o person_n cull_v out_o their_o sentence_n concern_v the_o thing_n and_o prove_v a_o truth_n by_o it_o hart._n well_o if_o you_o may_v divide_v the_o sentence_n of_o canus_n and_o other_o sort_n than_o i_o have_v do_v rainoldes_n that_o i_o wish_v for_o the_o truth_n be_v like_a unto_o camomile_n the_o more_o you_o press_v it_o down_o the_o fast_a it_o grow_v and_o spread_v fair_a and_o smell_v sweet_a hart._n so_o much_o of_o scripture_n then_o now_o to_o tradition_n by_o which_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n may_v be_v clear_o prove_v rainoldes_n by_o tradition_n why_o do_v you_o acknowledge_v then_o that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n hart._n i_o tell_v you_o no_o once_o again_o how_o often_o must_v i_o say_v it_o rainoldes_n once_o saying_n will_v serve_v if_o you_o do_v not_o unsay_v your_o say_n but_o here_o in_o my_o judgement_n you_o seem_v to_o unsay_v it_o for_o you_o disclaim_v the_o title_n pretend_v by_o scripture_n when_o you_o claim_v by_o tradition_n hart._n why_o so_o may_v not_o the_o same_o thing_n both_o be_v write_v in_o scripture_n and_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n rainoldes_n it_o may_v &_o be_v no_o doubt_n as_o 2.15_o the_o tradition_n show_v which_o s._n paul_n do_v mention_v which_o signify_v the_o doctrine_n that_o he_o deliver_v 17.2_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o you_o mean_v a_o doctrine_n not_o write_v in_o the_o scripture_n when_o you_o speak_v of_o tradition_n for_o 4._o you_o do_v imagine_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v partly_o contain_v traditionibus_fw-la in_o write_v book_n that_o be_v the_o scripture_n partly_o in_o unwriten_a thing_n that_o be_v tradition_n as_o t●●bi_n the_o jewish_a rabbin_n do_v say_v that_o god_n by_o moses_n deliver_v not_o only_o the_o law_n that_o be_v write_v but_o also_o a_o unwriten_a law_n which_o they_o call_v cabala_n hart._n see_v as_o the_o jewish_a rabbin_n you_o have_v enure_v your_o mouth_n to_o such_o venomous_a spéeches·_n rainoldes_n beware_v or_o else_o through_o my_o side_n you_o will_v wound_v your_o friend_n for_o 1._o bishop_n peresius_n your_o chief_a patron_n of_o tradition_n do_v prove_v they_o solemn_o by_o this_o point_n of_o the_o jewish_a rabbin_n and_o the_o cabala_n neither_o be_v the_o proof_n unfit_a if_o it_o be_v weigh_v for_o as_o they_o pretend_v this_o ground_n for_o the_o cabala_n that_o it_o open_v the_o hide_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o do_v you_o for_o tradition_n and_o as_o 7.13_o they_o in_o process_n of_o time_n bring_v in_o doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n under_o pretence_n of_o tradition_n so_o do_v you_o with_o your_o cabala_n and_o as_o cabalist_n among_o the_o jew_n do_v call_v they_o tisbi_n scripture-man_n by_o way_n of_o reproach_n who_o cast_v off_o tradition_n and_o cleave_v to_o scripture_n only_o so_o do_v traditionist_n among_o you_o reproach_n we_o with_o 2._o the_o same_o term_n yea_o 2._o lindan_n and_o 1●_n prateolus_n do_v note_v it_o for_o a_o special_a heresy_n but_o to_o leave_v this_o venomous_a speech_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o you_o renounce_v the_o scripture_n for_o proof_n of_o any_o title_n which_o you_o lay_v claim_v to_o by_o tradition_n for_o scripture_n be_v write_v tradition_n unwriten_a wherefore_o if_o by_o tradition_n you_o mind_n to_o prove_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n you_o must_v acknowledge_v first_o that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n if_o you_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o ackonwlege_n that_o i_o must_v debar_v you_o from_o tradition_n hart._n then_o i_o will_v prove_v it_o by_o the_o father_n rainoldes_n nay_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o neither_o unless_o you_o will_v forgo_v the_o scripture_n hart._n and_o why_o so_o i_o pray_v rainoldes_n because_o they_o say_v forsooth_o that_o it_o be_v hold_v by_o tradition_n so_o that_o their_o evidence_n make_v against_o you_o if_o scripture_n be_v your_o plea_n for_o it_o hart._n that_o be_v very_o false_a for_o by_o the_o word_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n in_o the_o sixtéenth_n of_o matthew_n the_o first_o pope_n of_o rome_n most_o holy_a martyr_n have_v prove_v it_o prima_fw-la anacletus_fw-la orthodoxos_fw-la alexander_n the_o first_o ecclesias_fw-la pius_fw-la the_o first_o theophilum_fw-la victor_n episcopos_fw-la zepherinus_n provinciae_fw-la marcellus_n tusciae_fw-la eusebius_n episcopos_fw-la melchiade_n episcopos_fw-la julius_n &_o episcopos_fw-la damasus_n and_o likewise_o other_o by_o other_o place_n as_o d._n 15._o stapleton_n allege_v far_o wherefore_o that_o the_o father_n take_v it_o as_o you_o say_v to_o be_v hold_v by_o tradition_n it_o be_v a_o flat_a lie_n rainoldes_n say_v you_o so_o then_o 8._o canus_n and_o 5._o father_n robert_n do_v lie_v flat_o but_o that_o be_v no_o marvel_n who_o ground_v it_o both_o on_o tradition_n the_o one_o do_v cite_v for_o witness_n thereof_o the_o first_o pope_n of_o rome_n most_o holy_a martyr_n anacletus_fw-la sixtus_n the_o first_o eleutherius_fw-la victor_n sixtus_n the_o second_o zepherinus_n marcellus_n melchiade_n marcus_n &_o julius_n the_o other_o not_o content_v himself_o with_o particular_n do_v allege_v in_o gross_a f●●st_a the_o general_a counsel_n next_o the_o pope_n and_o last_o the_o father_n hart._n yet_o more_o of_o canus_n and_o father_n robert_n i_o take_v not_o their_o defence_n upon_o i_o and_o why_o again_o do_v you_o tell_v i_o of_o they_o rainoldes_n that_o you_o may_v see_v how_o 7.33_o the_o lord_n do_v sheathe_v the_o sword_n of_o madianites_fw-la in_o their_o own_o side_n to_o the_o confusion_n of_o they_o who_o pitch_n their_o camp_n against_o israel_n for_o the_o same_o pope_n which_o be_v allege_v by_o canus_n to_o prove_v that_o their_o supremacy_n be_v a_o unwritten_a truth_n the_o very_a same_o pope_n be_v allege_v by_o stapleton_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v write_v even_o anacletus_fw-la victor_n zepherinus_n marcellus_n melchiade_n and_o julius_n yea_o and_o that_o be_v more_o the_o very_a same_o epistle_n of_o they_o be_v allege_v by_o stapleton_n which_o by_o canus_n if_o right_o by_o canus_n how_o may_v we_o trust_v stapleton_n if_o right_o by_o stapleton_n how_o may_v we_o trust_v canus_n if_o right_o by_o they_o both_o what_o trim_a pope_n be_v they_o who_o with_o one_o
if_o any_o man_n preach_v unto_o you_o more_o than_o you_o have_v receyve_v but_o beside_o that_o you_o have_v receyve_v for_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v prejudicial_a to_o himself_o who_o desire_v to_o come_v to_o the_o thessalonian_o 3.10_o that_o he_o may_v supply_v that_o which_o be_v want_v to_o their_o faith_n now_o he_o that_o suppli_v add_v that_o which_o be_v want_v take_v not_o away_o that_o which_o be_v and_o so_o forth_o whereby_o s._n austin_n show_v that_o we_o may_v preach_v more_o than_o the_o scripture_n have_v but_o not_o beside_o it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o it_o rainoldes_n he_o show_v nothing_o less_o as_o any_o man_n that_o read_v his_o discourse_n may_v see_v for_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v of_o more_o and_o of_o want_v be_v not_o mean_v of_o scripture_n that_o be_v the_o word_n write_v but_o of_o the_o word_n preach_v &_o deliver_v by_o mouth_n wherein_o he_o declare_v that_o the_o apostle_n manner_n of_o instruct_v man_n be_v 6.1_o to_o feed_v they_o first_o with_o milk_n not_o with_o strong_a meat_n so_o that_o which_o be_v want_v to_o the_o thessalonian_o be_v strong_a doctrine_n of_o the_o faith_n that_o which_o they_o have_v be_v easy_a whereof_o though_o in_o the_o one_o he_o teach_v they_o more_o than_o in_o the_o other_o yet_o no_o more_o in_o either_o than_o 26.22_o the_o scripture_n have_v and_o thus_o s._n augustine_n more_o to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o scripture_n himself_o make_v manifest_a by_o the_o example_n also_o which_o he_o give_v of_o it_o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o manhead_n of_o christ_n he_o call_v milk_n of_o the_o godhead_n strong_a meat_n now_o they_o who_o be_v teach_v to_o know_v he_o to_o be_v god_n learn_v more_o than_o they_o have_v learn_v when_o they_o receive_v he_o as_o man_n but_o they_o learn_v no_o more_o than_o the_o scripture_n have_v 3.16_o which_o teach_v he_o both_o god_n and_o man_n wherefore_o that_o s._n austin_n condemn_v all_o who_o preach_v aught_o beside_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o law_n &_o the_o gospel_n mean_v that_o more_o than_o scripture_n may_v be_v preach_v but_o nought_o against_o they_o it_o be_v not_o s_n augustine_n gloze_n but_o your_o lovanist_n and_o in_o truth_n repugnant_a to_o s._n augustine_n text_n for_o 6._o in_o the_o same_o place_n s._n austin_n make_v mention_n how_o the_o donatist_n hate_n he_o for_o preach_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o confute_v their_o heresy_n doceatur_fw-la as_o though_o say_v he_o we_o have_v command_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n who_o be_v so_o long_o before_o we_o that_o they_o in_o their_o book_n shall_v set_v down_o no_o testimony_n whereby_o the_o donatist_n might_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ._n which_o word_n do_v show_v plain_o that_o as_o by_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o law_n &_o the_o gospel_n he_o signify_v the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n &_o apostle_n so_o by_o condemn_v all_o that_o be_v beside_o the_o scripture_n he_o mean_v not_o all_o that_o be_v against_o but_o all_o that_o be_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o this_o be_v his_o meaning_n he_o show_v yet_o more_o plain_o by_o will_v they_o to_o prove_v their_o doctrine_n by_o the_o testament_n which_o your_o lovan_n 23._o doctor_n the_o great_a shame_n for_o they_o to_o wrest_v s._n augustine_n word_n against_o his_o sense_n do_v note_n also_o for_o as_o among_o man_n the_o testament_n do_v open_v the_o will_n of_o the_o testator_n so_o do_v s._n austin_n think_v that_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o the_o donatist_n and_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v decide_v by_o the_o scripture_n which_o christ_n have_v leave_v to_o christian_n as_o his_o will_n and_o testament_n for_o donatist_n christ_n have_v deal_v with_o we_o as_o a_o earthly_a father_n be_v wont_v with_o his_o child_n who_o fear_v lest_o they_o shall_v fall_v out_o after_o his_o decease_n do_v set_v down_o his_o will_n in_o write_v under_o witness_n &_o if_o there_o arise_v debate_n among_o the_o brethren_n they_o go_v to_o the_o testament_n he_o who_o word_n must_v end_v our_o controversy_n be_v christ._n let_v his_o will_v be_v seek_v in_o his_o testament_n say_v optatus_n which_o reason_n of_o optatus_n s._n 2._o austin_n urge_v against_o the_o donatist_n as_o he_o do_v other_o often_o we_o be_v brethren_n say_v he_o to_o they_o why_o do_v we_o strive_v our_o father_n die_v not_o untestate_a he_o make_v a_o testament_n &_o so_o die_v man_n do_v strive_v about_o the_o good_n of_o the_o dead_a till_o the_o testament_n be_v bring_v forth_o when_o that_o be_v bring_v they_o yield_v to_o have_v it_o open_v &_o read_v the_o judge_n do_v hearken_v the_o counselor_n be_v silent_a the_o crier_n bid_v peace_n all_o the_o people_n be_v attentive_a that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o dead_a man_n may_v be_v read_v &_o hear_v he_o lie_v void_a of_o life_n &_o feeling_n in_o his_o grave_n and_o his_o word_n prevail_v christ_n do_v sit_v in_o heaven_n and_o be_v his_o testament_n gainesay_v open_v it_o let_v we_o read_v we_o be_v brethren_n why_o do_v we_o strive_v let_v our_o mind_n be_v pacify_v our_o father_n have_v not_o leave_v we_o without_o a_o testament_n he_o that_o make_v the_o testament_n be_v live_v for_o ever_o he_o do_v hear_v our_o word_n he_o do_v know_v his_o own_o word_n let_v we_o read_v why_o do_v we_o strive_v be_v not_o this_o a_o silly_a speech_n of_o s._n austin_n if_o he_o have_v mean_v as_o you_o say_v that_o all_o the_o lord_n will_v be_v not_o declare_v in_o his_o testament_n that_o thing_n beside_o his_o own_o word_n may_v be_v prove_v by_o man_n word_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v who_o preach_v any_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o life_n beside_o the_o scripture_n true_a beside_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v against_o the_o scripture_n say_v your_o lovan_n doctor_n see_v what_o skill_n can_v do_v if_o they_o be_v doctor_n of_o the_o arch_n we_o shall_v have_v jolly_a law_n for_o a_o coosine_v merchant_n may_v claim_v a_o thousand_o pound_n of_o a_o dead_a man_n good_n who_o have_v bequeath_v he_o a_o legacy_n of_o twenty_o groat_n &_o they_o may_v adjudge_v it_o he_o with_o good_a conscience_n as_o not_o against_o the_o testament_n though_o beside_o the_o testament_n nay_o they_o may_v do_v this_o with_o so_o much_o better_a reason_n than_o they_o do_v the_o other_o by_o how_o much_o the_o testament_n of_o god_n be_v more_o perfect_a they_o any_o man_n can_v be_v and_o that_o which_o christ_n bequeath_v the_o pope_n be_v far_o less_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o supremacy_n than_o twenty_o groat_n of_o a_o thousand_o pound_n wherefore_o say_v the_o doctor_n of_o lovan_n what_o they_o li●t_v perhaps_o they_o speak_v for_o their_o fee_n s._n austin_n mean_v plain_o that_o since_o the_o donatist_n claim_v the_o inheritance_n of_o christ_n to_o themselves_o they_o must_v prove_v their_o title_n by_o his_o will_n and_o testament_n which_o if_o they_o can_v not_o do_v or_o rather_o see_v that_o they_o can_v not_o he_o pronounce_v of_o they_o they_o have_v no_o right_n unto_o it_o and_o thereupon_o he_o come_v to_o the_o general_a sentence_n of_o the_o heavenly_a judge_n denounce_v they_o accurse_v who_o in_o any_o point_n either_o of_o faith_n or_o life_n do_v preach_v beside_o that_o which_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n wherein_o if_o beside_o do_v signify_v against_o then_o all_o in_o this_o respect_n be_v against_o a_o testament_n which_o be_v beside_o a_o testament_n hart._n s._n austin_n and_o optatus_n against_o the_o donatist_n do_v speak_v reason_n that_o unless_o they_o can_v prove_v their_o right_n by_o christ_n testament_n they_o may_v not_o shut_v the_o catholic_n out_o from_o his_o inheritance_n and_o claim_v his_o good_n unto_o themselves_o for_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o will_n of_o the_o testator_n shall_v be_v keep_v but_o a_o learned_a lawyer_n one_o 5._o francis_n baldwin_n who_o have_v set_v forth_o optatus_n and_o write_v note_n upon_o he_o do_v show_v that_o a_o testament_n may_v be_v either_o nuncupatiwm_fw-la as_o he_o call_v it_o or_o scriptum_fw-la either_o set_v down_o in_o writing_n or_o utter_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n what_o say_v you_o to_o testamentum_fw-la nuncupatiwm_fw-la rainoldes_n i_o grant_v that_o possunt_fw-la a_o testament_n may_v be_v make_v without_o writing_n so_o that_o it_o be_v do_v before_o a_o solemn_a number_n of_o witness_n but_o the_o testament_n of_o christ_n be_v write_v i_o hope_v and_o so_o do_v both_o optatus_n and_o austin_n speak_v of_o it_o wherefore_o your_o learned_a lawyer_n may_v keep_v that_o law_n in_o st●re_n until_o his_o client_n need_v it_o hart._n as_o who_o say_v the_o testament_n of_o christ_n may_v not_o be_v write_v in_o part_n though_o
not_o in_o whole_a which_o be_v baldwin_n meaning_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o place_n not_o of_o optatus_n but_o of_o austin_n whereto_o he_o apply_v it_o rainoldes_n but_o if_o baldwin_n mean_v so_o baldwin_n shall_v have_v remember_v that_o a_o testament_n so_o make_v be_v not_o testamentum_fw-la nuncupatiwm_fw-la for_o dete●tamentis_fw-la that_o be_v unwriten_a as_o the_o very_a quidem_fw-la rudiment_n of_o the_o law_n may_v teach_v he_o but_o imperfectum_fw-la rather_o though_o write_v yet_o unperfit_a and_o i_o trust_v you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o testament_n of_o christ_n be_v unperfit_a sure_a optatus_n will_v not_o hart._n nor_o i_o sir_n though_o you_o will_v fain_o imply_v as_o though_o i_o say_v so_o for_o if_o christ_n will_v have_v his_o will_n in_o part_n write_v in_o part_n deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n join_v they_o both_o together_o they_o make_v a_o perfect_a testament_n rainoldes_n then_o the_o write_v testament_n of_o christ_n be_v unperfit_a it_o will_v be_v gay_a and_o perfect_a with_o your_o tradition_n patch_v to_o it_o but_o optatus_n think_v that_o his_o write_v testament_n be_v perfect_a of_o itself_o which_o shake_v all_o the_o frame_n of_o popery_n in_o piece_n and_o this_o be_v that_o optatus_n 40._o of_o who_o s._n austin_n speak_v as_o of_o a_o worthy_a catholic_a bishop_n equal_a to_o ambrose_n and_o cyprian_n of_o who_o 2._o fulgentius_n speak_v as_o of_o a_o holy_a faithful_a interpreter_n of_o paul_n like_v to_o austin_n and_o ambrose_n of_o who_o 5._o your_o great_a champion_n do_v vaunt_v so_o glorious_o that_o he_o nor_o he_o only_o but_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o tortius_fw-la father_n be_v of_o your_o religion_n as_o sure_o and_o full_o as_o the_o pope_n himself_o pope_n gregory_n the_o thirteen_o whereas_o in_o very_a truth_n not_o one_o of_o they_o be_v so_o for_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o be_v of_o your_o religion_n in_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n the_o chief_a point_n of_o popery_n as_o apost_n his_o rule_n of_o chancery_n for_o re●eru_a ation_n and_o provision_n dom._n his_o accurse_v of_o all_o that_o appeal_v from_o pope_n to_o counsel_n decimit●rt_n his_o bull_n against_o decree_n of_o counsel_n both_o provincial_a and_o general_a do_v show_v from_o which_o abomination_n how_o far_o the_o father_n be_v it_o shall_v appear_v when_o you_o allege_v they_o but_o optatus_n be_v so_o plain_a against_o your_o religion_n in_o the_o point_n of_o scripture_n and_o their_o sufficiency_n to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n that_o your_o challenger_n if_o he_o read_v he_o and_o not_o believe_v common-place-booke_n of_o canisius_n and_o other_o broker_n may_v have_v blush_v to_o boast_v of_o he_o for_o those_o thing_n which_o 5._o he_o cit_v out_o of_o optatus_n do_v not_o as_o much_o as_o raze_v the_o skin_n of_o our_o religion_n though_o they_o seem_v to_o weak_a eye_n sight_n but_o this_o of_o scripture_n only_o do_v break_v the_o neck_n of_o you_o and_o it_o be_v so_o clear_o the_o judgement_n of_o optatus_n that_o your_o own_o 5._o baldwin_n in_o his_o annotation_n be_v fain_o to_o say_v of_o he_o he_o use_v that_o comparison_n of_o a_o testament_n not_o so_o wary_o hart._n not_o so_o wary_o as_o austin_n do_v for_o austin_n use_v it_o when_o he_o will_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o church_n be_v catholic_a which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o point_n of_o their_o controversy_n with_o the_o donatist_n rainoldes_n but_o in_o handle_v that_o point_n he_o make_v it_o a_o general_a rule_n that_o whether_o it_o be_v of_o christ_n or_o of_o his_o church_n or_o of_o any_o thing_n else_o whatsoever_o pertain_v to_o our_o faith_n and_o life_n nothing_o must_v be_v preach_v beside_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v the_o testament_n hart._n but_o in_o a_o other_o point_n of_o their_o controversy_n touch_v baptism_n s._n 6._o austin_n do_v allege_v not_o so_o much_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n rainoldes_n not_o so_o much_o the_o scripture_n he_o do_v the_o scripture_n then_o though_o he_o allege_v also_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o what_o be_v that_o against_o the_o testament_n hart._n nay_o beside_o the_o testament_n which_o be_v the_o word_n write_v he_o do_v commend_v unwriten_a tradition_n in_o other_o place_n which_o prove_v that_o he_o think_v not_o the_o testament_n sufficient_a to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n rainoldes_n now_o s._n austin_n find_v favour_n at_o your_o hand_n who_o make_v he_o say_v and_o unsay_v the_o same_o but_o where_o unsaith_o he_o that_o of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n hart._n you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o 8._o augustinian_a confession_n of_o torrensis_n in_o the_o chapter_n of_o tradition_n rainoldes_n but_o i_o will_v see_v it_o in_o s._n austin_n torrensis_n be_v a_o jesuit_n who_o we_o have_v take_v oft_o in_o lie_n i_o can_v trust_v he_o hart._n why_o he_o allege_v s._n augustine_n own_o word_n as_o in_o 26._o the_o first_o place_n which_o bring_v in_o s._n cyprian_n too_o quod_fw-la autem_fw-la nos_fw-la admonet_fw-la cyprianus_n ut_fw-la ad_fw-la fontem_fw-la rec●rramus_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la traditionem_fw-la &_o inde_fw-la canalem_fw-la in_o nostra_fw-la tempora_fw-la dirigamus_fw-la optimum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la dubitatione_n faciendum_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v whereas_o cyprian_n warn_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v go_v to_o the_o coondit_fw-fr head_n which_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o thence_o direct_v the_o pipe_n to_o our_o own_o time_n that_o be_v best_a and_o to_o be_v do_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n these_o be_v s._n augustine_n own_o word_n rainoldes_n s._n augustine_n own_o word_n in_o deed_n but_o what_o do_v follow_v in_o s._n austin_n traditum_fw-la est_fw-la ergo_fw-la nobis_fw-la sicut_fw-la ipse_fw-la commemorate_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n quòd_fw-la sit_fw-la unus_fw-la deus_fw-la &_o christus_fw-la unus_fw-la &_o una_fw-la spes_fw-la &_o fides_fw-la una_fw-la &_o una_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la &_o baptisma_fw-la unum_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v deliver_v therefore_o to_o we_o by_o the_o apostle_n as_o cyprian_n himself_o rehearse_v that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o one_o christ_n and_o one_o hope_n and_o one_o faith_n and_o one_o church_n and_o one_o baptism_n these_o be_v s._n augustine_n own_o word_n and_o ground_v on_o s._n ●ompeium_fw-la cyprian_n too_o so_o that_o he_o and_o cyprian_a mean_v by_o tradition_n that_o which_o be_v deliver_v and_o that_o to_o be_v deliver_v which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o this_o self_n same_o thing_n whereof_o they_o speak_v be_v write_v in_o the_o epistle_n of_o 4.4_o paul_n to_o the_o ephesian_n wherefore_o their_o tradition_n be_v tradition_n write_v that_o be_v to_o say_v scripture_n and_o not_o unwriten_a stuff_n as_o your_o jesuit_n will_v have_v it_o yea_o cyprian_n be_v so_o plain_a for_o controversy_n to_o be_v decide_v by_o this_o tradition_n only_o that_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n whence_o austin_n cit_v this_o to_o the_o word_n of_o stephanus_n traditum_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v deliver_v unde_fw-la est_fw-la ista_fw-la traditio_fw-la faith_n he_o whence_o be_v this_o tradition_n do_v it_o come_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o gospel_n or_o from_o the_o commandment_n and_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o that_o we_o must_v do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v god_n do_v witness_n say_v to_o joshua_n 1.8_o let_v not_o this_o book_n of_o the_o law_n depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n but_o meditate_v in_o it_o day_n and_o night_n that_o thou_o may_v observe_v to_o perform_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v therein_o and_o likewise_o the_o lord_n send_v his_o apostle_n will_v they_o that_o 28.20_o the_o nation_n shall_v be_v baptize_v and_o teach_v to_o observe_v all_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v command_v wherefore_o if_o this_o thing_n of_o the_o which_o stephanus_n say_v it_o be_v deliver_v be_v command_v in_o the_o gospel_n or_o contain_v in_o the_o epistle_n or_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n let_v this_o divine_a and_o holy_a tradition_n be_v observe_v see_v you_o not_o how_o cyprian_n think_v that_o all_o which_o christ_n command_v to_o be_v teach_v be_v write_v how_o he_o mean_v this_o write_v doctrine_n by_o tradition_n how_o his_o word_n of_o this_o tradition_n be_v approve_v by_o austin_n what_o conscience_n have_v your_o jesuit_n to_o allege_v that_o for_o tradition_n beside_o scripture_n which_o they_o so_o plain_o mean_v of_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o hart._n i_o do_v not_o see_v this_o neither_o in_o s._n austin_n nor_o in_o s._n cyprian_n rainoldes_n i_o be_o the_o soryer_n that_o your_o sight_n serve_v you_o no_o better_o for_o the_o thing_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o your_o own_o pompeium_n pamelius_n declare_v that_o cyprian_a mean_v the_o holy_a scripture_n there_o by_o tradition_n hart._n yet_o pamelius_n add_v that_o if_o
which_o they_o do_v gather_v of_o those_o word_n then_o may_v we_o know_v 1.7_o the_o time_n whereof_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o man_n to_o know_v they_o and_o upon_o this_o reason_n s._n 53._o austin_n do_v reprove_v that_o fancy_n of_o six_o thousand_o year_n as_o rash_a and_o presumptuous_a hart._n so_o do_v we_o also_o for_o 2._o lindan_n and_o haereses_fw-la prateolus_n do_v note_v it_o in_o luther_n and_o melanchthons_n chronicle_n as_o a_o jewish_a heresy_n rainoldes_n good_a reason_n when_o luther_n and_o melanchthon_n write_v it_o but_o when_o 23._o irenaeus_n 14._o hilary_n 17._o lactantius_n and_o 71._o other_o father_n write_v it_o what_o do_v they_o note_v it_o then_o hart._n suppose_v it_o be_v a_o oversight_n but_o what_o need_v all_o this_o as_o who_o say_v you_o doubt_v that_o we_o will_v maintain_v the_o father_n in_o those_o thing_n in_o which_o they_o be_v convict_v of_o error_n by_o the_o scripture_n rainoldes_n i_o have_v cause_n to_o doubt_v it_o for_o though_o there_o be_v no_o man_n light_o so_o profane_a as_o to_o profess_v that_o he_o will_v do_v so_o yet_o such_o be_v the_o blindness_n o●_n mens_fw-la devotion_n to_o saint_n there_o have_v be_v heretofore_o who_o have_v so_o do_v and_o be_v still_o there_o be_v a_o famous_a fable_n touch_v the_o assumption_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n that_o when_o the_o time_n of_o her_o death_n approach_v the_o apostle_n then_o disperse_v throughout_o the_o world_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v take_v up_o in_o cloud_n and_o bring_v miraculous_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o be_v present_a at_o her_o funeral_n this_o tale_n in_o old_a time_n be_v write_v in_o a_o book_n which_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o melito_n 25._o a_o ancient_a learned_a bishop_n of_o asia_n though_o he_o write_v it_o not_o be_v like_a but_o whosoever_o write_v it_o he_o write_v a_o lie_n say_v 8._o bede_n because_o his_o word_n gain_v say_v the_o word_n of_o s._n luke_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o bede_n have_v show_v in_o sundry_a point_n of_o his_o tale_n he_o say_v that_o he_o reherse_v these_o thing_n because_o he_o know_v that_o some_o believe_v that_o book_n with_o unaduised_a rashness_n against_o s._n luke_n authority_n so_o you_o see_v there_o have_v be_v who_o have_v beléeve_v a_o father_n yea_o perhaps_o a_o rascal_n not_o a_o father_n against_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o there_o be_v such_o still_o i_o see_v by_o our_o countryman_n 1.14_o your_o divine_n of_o rheims_n who_o vouch_v the_o same_o fable_n upon_o great_a credit_n of_o father_n than_o the_o other_o but_o with_o no_o great_a truth_n hart._n do_v you_o call_v the_o assumption_n of_o our_o lady_n a_o fable_n what_o impiety_n be_v this_o against_o the_o mother_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o excellent_a vessel_n of_o grace_n who_o 1.41_o all_o generation_n ought_v to_o call_v bless_v but_o you_o can_v not_o abide_v her_o praise_n and_o honour_n nay_o you_o have_v abolish_v not_o only_o her_o great_a feast_n of_o her_o assumption_n but_o of_o her_o conception_n and_o nativity_n too_o so_o as_o it_o may_v be_v think_v the_o devil_n bear_v a_o special_a malice_n to_o this_o woman_n who_o seed_n break_v his_o head_n rainoldes_n it_o may_v be_v think_v that_o 9_o the_o devil_n when_o he_o do_v strive_v with_o michael_n about_o the_o body_n of_o moses_n 34.6_o who_o the_o lord_n bury_v the_o jew_n know_v not_o where_o do_v strive_v judae_fw-la that_o his_o body_n may_v be_v reveal_v to_o the_o jew_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o they_o may_v worship_v it_o and_o commit_v idolatry_n but_o it_o be_v out_o of_o doubt_n that_o when_o he_o move_v 14.11_o the_o people_n of_o lystra_n to_o sacrifice_v unto_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n and_o to_o call_v they_o god_n he_o mean_v to_o deface_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n by_o the_o too_o much_o honour_v and_o praise_v of_o his_o saint_n we_o can_v abide_v the_o praise_n of_o barnabas_n and_o paul_n but_o not_o to_o have_v they_o call_v go_n we_o can_v abide_v their_o honour_n but_o not_o to_o sacrifice_v unto_o they_o we_o know_v that_o the_o devil_n do_v bear_v a_o special_a malice_n both_o to_o the_o woman_n and_o to_o the_o woman_n seed_n but_o whether_o he_o do_v wreak_v it_o more_o upon_o the_o seed_n by_o your_o sacrifice_v of_o praise_n and_o prayer_n to_o the_o woman_n or_o by_o our_o not_o sacrifice_v let_v 22.9_o they_o define_v 2.11_o who_o know_v his_o policy_n the_o christian_n of_o old_a time_n 13._o be_v charge_v with_o impiety_n because_o they_o have_v no_o god_n but_o one_o this_o be_v our_o impiety_n for_o whatsoever_o honour_n and_o praise_n may_v be_v give_v to_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n as_o holy_a creature_n but_o creature_n 2._o we_o do_v glad_o give_v it_o we_o think_v of_o they_o all_o and_o namely_o of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n reverent_o &_o honourable_o we_o desire_v ourselves_o and_o wish_v other_o to_o follow_v her_o godly_a faith_n and_o virtuous_a life_n we_o esteem_v she_o as_o a_o excellent_a vessel_n of_o grace_n we_o call_v she_o as_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o 1.28_o bless_a yea_o the_o most_o bless_a of_o all_o woman_n but_o you_o will_v have_v she_o to_o be_v name_v and_o think_v not_o only_o bless_v herself_o but_o also_o a_o giver_n of_o blessedness_n to_o other_o not_o a_o vessel_n but_o a_o fountain_n or_o as_o you_o entitle_v she_o misericordiae_fw-la a_o mother_n of_o grace_n and_o mercy_n and_o in_o your_o solemn_a prayer_n you_o do_v she_o quint._n that_o honour_n which_o 11.4_o be_v only_o due_a to_o our_o creator_n and_o redeemer_n for_o you_o call_v on_o she_o to_o defend_v you_o from_o the_o enemy_n and_o receive_v you_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n thus_o although_o in_o semblance_n of_o word_n you_o deny_v it_o yet_o in_o deed_n you_o make_v she_o equal_a to_o christ_n 4._o as_o he_o our_o lord_n so_o her_o our_o domina_fw-la lady_n as_o he_o our_o god_n so_o her_o our_o dea._n goddess_n as_o he_o our_o king_n so_o her_o our_o regina_fw-la queen_n as_o he_o our_o mediator_n so_o her_o our_o mediatrix_fw-la mediatresse_n as_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n tempt_v like_o we_o sin_n except_v so_o her_o peccati_fw-la devoide_a of_o all_o sin_n as_o he_o the_o only_a name_n whereby_o we_o must_v be_v save_v so_o her_o our_o vita_fw-la life_n our_o dulcedo_fw-la joy_n our_o salve_n hope_n a_o very_a mother_n of_o orphan_n a_o aid_n to_o the_o oppress_a a_o medicine_n to_o the_o disease_a and_o to_o be_v short_a omne_fw-la all_o to_o all_o which_o impious_a worship_n of_o a_o saint_n because_o you_o have_v advance_v by_o keep_v holy_a day_n unto_o she_o the_o feast_n of_o her_o conception_n nativity_n &_o assumption_n therefore_o be_v they_o abolish_v by_o the_o reform_a church_n just_o for_o the_o use_n of_o holy_a day_n be_v not_o to_o worship_n saint_n but_o to_o worship_n god_n the_o sanctifier_n of_o saint_n as_o 1.10_o the_o lord_n ordain_v they_o that_o man_n may_v meet_v together_o to_o serve_v he_o and_o hear_v his_o word_n hart._n why_o keep_v you_o then_o still_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n &_o other_o saint_n and_o not_o abolish_v they_o also_o as_o some_o of_o your_o reform_a or_o rather_o your_o deform_a church_n have_v do_v rainoldes_n our_o deform_a church_n be_v glorious_a in_o his_o sight_n who_o 4.23_o require_v man_n to_o worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n &_o truth_n though_o you_o besot_v with_o the_o hoorish_a beauty_n of_o your_o synagogue_n do_v scorn_n at_o their_o simpleness_n as_o 6.20_o the_o proud_a spirit_n of_o mical_a do_v at_o david_n when_o he_o be_v vile_a before_o the_o lord_n the_o church_n of_o scotland_n flanders_n france_n and_o fidei_fw-la other_o allow_v not_o holy_a day_n of_o saint_n because_o no_o day_n may_v be_v keep_v holy_a but_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n of_o the_o same_o judgement_n be_v the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o the_o use_n of_o holy_a day_n wherefore_o 〈◊〉_d although_o by_o keep_v the_o name_n of_o saint_n day_n we_o may_v seem_v to_o keep_v they_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n yet_o in_o deed_n we_o keep_v they_o holy_a to_o god_n only_o to_o praise_v his_o name_n for_o those_o benefit_n which_o he_o have_v bestow_v on_o we_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o so_o have_v ●_o the_o church_n of_o flanders_n and_o france_n expound_v well_o our_o meaning_n in_o that_o they_o have_v note_v that_o some_o church_n submit_v themselves_o to_o their_o weakness_n with_o who_o they_o be_v conversant_a so_o far_o forth_o that_o they_o keep_v the_o holy_a day_n of_o saint_n though_o in_o a_o other_o sort_n nay_o in_o a_o clean_a contrary_n than_o the_o papist_n do_v hart._n but_o if_o you_o keep_v the_o feast_n of_o other_o saint_n in_o that_o sort_n why_o not_o
be_v not_o one_o word_n of_o your_o miraculous_a fable_n as_o little_a in_o s._n athanasius_n beside_o that_o the_o sermon_n which_o you_o allege_v as_o he_o be_v in_o atrebat_fw-la your_o own_o edition_n reject_v for_o a_o bastard_n in_o damascene_fw-la there_o be_v more_o yet_o not_o so_o much_o neither_o as_o here_o mariae_fw-la your_o portesse_n have_v but_o he_o be_v 740._o too_o late_a &_o too_o weak_a a_o witness_n to_o prove_v a_o doubtful_a matter_n pretend_v to_o be_v do_v almost_o five_o hundred_o year_n before_o he_o the_o best_a or_o rather_o all_o your_o proof_n be_v s._n denys_n who_o you_o belie_v notable_o for_o where_o say_v he_o that_o which_o you_o do_v father_n on_o he_o hart._n where_o timotheum_n in_o a_o epistle_n of_o he_o to_o s._n timothee_n rainoldes_n he_o write_v no_o such_o epistle_n your_o rhemiste_n do_v mistake_v their_o portesse_n whence_o this_o stuff_n be_v borrow_v for_o read_v there_o that_o denys_n write_v hereof_o to_o timothee_n they_o think_v it_o have_v be_v in_o a_o epistle_n to_o timothee_n the_o place_n which_o they_o mean_v be_v in_o a_o 3._o book_n entitle_v of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n pretend_v to_o be_v write_v to_o timothee_n by_o denys_n hart._n in_o a_o book_n or_o a_o epistle_n it_o be_v a_o great_a matter_n why_o you_o shall_v charge_v they_o with_o lie_v rainoldes_n i_o do_v not_o therefore_o charge_v they_o with_o it_o neither_o will_v i_o mention_v this_o but_o to_o point_v you_o the_o place_n in_o which_o they_o lie_v for_o they_o say_v that_o s._n denys_n write_v these_o &_o these_o thing_n where_o neither_o the_o autour_fw-fr who_o write_v be_v s._n denys_n neither_o write_v he_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o allege_v touch_v the_o thing_n first_o he_o say_v no_o more_o thereof_o but_o that_o among_o the_o bishop_n inspire_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n hierothe●s_v excel_v all_o the_o rest_n save_o the_o apostle_n in_o praise_v christ_n goodness_n when_o himself_o and_o timothee_n and_o many_o of_o their_o holy_a brethren_n 〈◊〉_d come_v together_o to_o behold_v the_o body_n which_o receive_v god_n and_o which_o the_o prince_n of_o life_n be_v in_o as_o for_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o apostle_n bring_v together_o s._n thomas_n come_v the_o third_o day_n after_o the_o angel_n sing_v hymn_n three_o day_n the_o burial_n of_o the_o virgin_n body_n the_o desire_n of_o thomas_n to_o see_v it_o the_o sepulchre_n open_v for_o his_o sake_n and_o the_o body_n assumpt_v into_o heaven_n he_o say_v not_o one_o word_n of_o these_o conceit_n not_o one_o word_n nay_o he_o rather_o say_v against_o they_o for_o he_o note_v namely_o that_o james_n be_v also_o present_a the_o brother_n of_o the_o lord_n and_z peter_n the_o chief_a and_o ancient_a top_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a he_o will_v so_o note_v of_o two_o apostle_n if_o they_o have_v all_o be_v present_a much_o less_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o he_o will_v say_v nothing_o of_o so_o great_a a_o miracle_n if_o any_o such_o have_v happen_v hart._n perhaps_o it_o be_v write_v in_o some_o other_o part_n of_o s._n denys_n work_v rainoldes_n in_o no_o part_n at_o all_o of_o any_o work_n that_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o s._n denys_n hart._n not_o that_o be_v extant_a now_o but_o he_o write_v many_o more_o as_o 20._o nicephorus_n show_v and_o deiparae_fw-la damascene_fw-la make_v mention_n of_o this_o epistle_n to_o timothee_n rainoldes_n nay_o that_o which_o damascene_fw-la mention_v be_v timotheum_n the_o book_n i_o speak_v of_o whence_o all_o that_o he_o cit_v be_v take_v word_n for_o word_n yea_o nicephorus_n also_o 22._o do_v allege_v the_o same_o quote_v timotheum_n the_o very_a chapter_n as_o the_o only_a place_n wherein_o the_o assumption_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v prove_v by_o s._n denys_n the_o more_o do_v i_o marvel_v what_o shall_v move_v your_o rhemist_n to_o say_v that_o s._n denys_n write_v and_o witness_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v bring_v miraculous_o together_o to_o honour_v her_o divine_a departure_n yea_o and_o that_o he_o testify_v of_o his_o own_o hear_n that_o both_o before_o her_o death_n and_o after_o for_o three_o day_n the_o angel_n do_v sing_v most_o melodious_a hymn_n unless_o they_o be_v dispose_v to_o lie_v for_o the_o whetstone_n but_o this_o of_o the_o thing_n the_o other_o of_o the_o autour_fw-fr be_v not_o so_o great_a a_o fault_n yet_o a_o fault_n too_o for_o they_o will_v have_v man_n think_v that_o he_o who_o write_v this_o work_n nominibus_fw-la of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n &_o other_o hierarchia_fw-la of_o the_o heavenly_a &_o church_n ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n as_o he_o term_v it_o be_v areopagita_n the_o famous_a denys_n 17.34_o the_o scholar_n of_o s._n paul_n whereas_o it_o be_v a_o counterfeit_n who_o take_v that_o denys_n name_n upon_o he_o hart._n it_o be_v that_o famous_a denys_n in_o deed_n ●4_n who_o write_v those_o notable_a and_o divine_a work_n and_o other_o in_o which_o he_o confirm_v and_o prove_v plain_o almost_o all_o thing_n that_o the_o church_n now_o use_v in_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o affirm_v that_o he_o learn_v they_o of_o the_o apostle_n give_v also_o testimony_n for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o most_o thing_n now_o controverse_v so_o plain_o that_o your_o man_n have_v no_o shift_n but_o to_o deny_v that_o denys_n to_o have_v be_v the_o autour_fw-fr of_o they_o feign_v that_o they_o be_v a_o other_o of_o late_a age_n which_o be_v a_o old_a sleight_n of_o heretic_n but_o most_o proper_a to_o you_o of_o all_o other_o who_o see_v all_o antiquity_n against_o you_o be_v force_v to_o be_v more_o bold_a or_o rather_o impudent_a they_o other_o in_o that_o point_n rainoldes_n these_o flower_n of_o your_o seminary_n that_o we_o be_v heretic_n bold_a impudent_a that_o all_o antiquity_n be_v against_o we_o you_o may_v spare_v they_o for_o they_o be_v stale_a they_o have_v be_v dip_v in_o gall_n &_o lie_v you_o say_v that_o he_o prove_v plain_o almost_o all_o thing_n that_o the_o church_n now_o use_v in_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n if_o you_o mean_v by_o the_o church_n not_o our_o church_n but_o you_o that_o almost_o must_n have_v favour_n or_o else_o without_o almost_o you_o lavish_a for_o though_o he_o have_v more_o thing_n then_o either_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v or_o we_o do_v allow_v yet_o neither_o all_o that_o you_o have_v &_o many_o that_o you_o have_v not_o and_o some_o clean_a contrary_a to_o you_o as_o namely_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n wherein_o you_o vary_v from_o we_o most_o ●4_n he_o neither_o have_v your_o stagelike_a gesture_n &_o toy_n nor_o invocation_n of_o saint_n nor_o adoration_n of_o creature_n nor_o sacrifice_v of_o christ_n to_o god_n nor_o pray_v for_o the_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n nor_o sole_a receyve_n of_o the_o priest_n nor_o minister_a under_o on●_n kind_a to_o they_o who_o receive_v nor_o exhortation_n lesson_n prayer_n in_o a_o tongue_n which_o the_o people_n do_v not_o understand_v so_o that_o in_o thing_n of_o substance_n and_o not_o of_o ceremony_n only_o he_o differ_v as_o far_o from_o your_o blasphemous_a mass_n as_o he_o be_v near_o to_o our_o communion_n but_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v you_o say_v that_o he_o affirm_v he_o learn_v they_o of_o the_o apostle_n he_o do_v so_o i_o grant_v as_o it_o be_v fit_a for_o he_o 3_o who_o will_v be_v count_v that_o denys_n which_o be_v convert_v by_o s._n paul_n but_o as_o it_o happen_v unto_o counterfeit_v he_o have_v forget_v himself_o in_o one_o place_n and_o so_o betray_v the_o feat_n for_o 7._o speak_v of_o infant_n why_o they_o be_v baptize_v hereof_o say_v he_o we_o say_v those_o thing_n which_o our_o divine_a master_n 〈◊〉_d be_v instruct_v by_o the_o old_a tradition_n have_v bring_v unto_o us._n by_o the_o which_o word_n the_o man_n at_o unaware_o have_v show_v that_o he_o learn_v not_o not_o of_o the_o apostle_n for_o christ_n himself_o instruct_v the_o apostle_n of_o baptism_n they_o have_v it_o not_o from_o old_a tradition_n hart._n that_o be_v a_o weak_a conjecture_n why_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o counterfeit_n for_o he_o may_v call_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n old_a tradition_n though_o it_o be_v but_o certain_a year_n or_o month_n before_o he_o rainoldes_n hardly_o if_o he_o live_v in_o the_o same_o time_n with_o they_o but_o if_o he_o may_v yet_o can_v he_o not_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v instruct_v by_o the_o old_a tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n belike_o his_o master_n be_v young_a man_n hart._n our_o conjecture_n may_v deceive_v we_o we_o must_v not_o trust_v they_o in_o such_o matter_n the_o father_n count_v he_o the_o right_a denys_n for_o christi_fw-la gregory_n nazianzen_n testament_n origen_n
church_n both_o in_o the_o spring_n and_o growth_n of_o it_o be_v cover_v with_o great_a darkness_n and_o lie_v unknown_a in_o a_o manner_n for_o those_o thing_n say_v he_o which_o be_v write_v of_o they_o be_v a_o few_o except_v foeda●a_fw-la defile_v with_o many_o fable_n while_o he_o that_o write_v they_o do_v follow_v his_o own_o affection_n &_o tell_v not_o what_o a_o saint_n have_v do_v but_o what_o he_o will_v have_v have_v he_o do_v so_o that_o the_o writer_n fancy_n and_o not_o the_o truth_n do_v pen_n the_o story_n yea_o some_o have_v think_v it_o a_o point_n of_o great_a godliness_n confingere_fw-la to_o coin_v pretty_a lie_n that_o thereby_o man_n devotion_n may_v be_v stir_v up_o some_o have_v think_v it_o a_o point_n of_o great_a godliness_n say_v vives_z but_o will_v you_o know_v of_o what_o godliness_n there_o be_v a_o mystery_n in_o y●_z which_o vi●es_n do_v not_o open_a canus_n do_v open_v it_o for_o 6._o he_o say_v that_o they_o who_o feign_v and_o forge_v in_o write_v ecclesiastical_a story_n devise_v their_o whole_a matter_n either_o to_o error_n or_o to_o gain_v s._n paul_n have_v forewarn_v we_o of_o a_o kind_n of_o man_n 6.5_o which_o think_v that_o gain_n be_v godliness_n your_o church_n m._n hart_n have_v have_v many_o minion_n who_o of_o a_o zeal_n to_o this_o godliness_n have_v not_o only_o write_v but_o wrought_v miracle_n too_o you_o remember_v 14._o the_o tale_n of_o bel_n and_o the_o dragon_n a_o 2d_o friend_n of_o you_o entreat_v thereof_o do_v report_n that_o as_o the_o priest_n of_o babylon_n do_v abuse_v the_o people_n in_o the_o dragon_n worship_n so_o even_o in_o the_o church_n the_o people_n sometime_o be_v shameful_o deceive_v with_o miracle_n wrought_v either_o by_o priest_n or_o by_o their_o adherent_n for_o gain_v and_o lucre_n sake_n hart._n if_o any_o do_v so_o we_o allow_v not_o of_o it_o and_o there_o be_v order_n take_v by_o sequent_a the_o council_n of_o trent_n against_o such_o abuse_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o portesse_n or_o rather_o to_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n chief_o since_o i_o mind_n not_o to_o allege_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o portesse_n for_o it_o rainoldes_n i_o be_v afraid_a you_o will_v you_o be_v a_o man_n a●_n likely_a for_o aught_o that_o i_o know_v to_o do_v it_o for_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n as_o your_o rhemist_n to_o do_v it_o for_o the_o assumption_n of_o the_o virgin_n though_o my_o meaning_n be_v not_o so_o much_o of_o your_o portesse_n as_o of_o portesse-like_a writer_n by_o who_o i_o fall_v into_o your_o portesse_n but_o ●f_o you_o mind_n not_o to_o allege_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o portesse_n for_o it_o than_o you_o will_v not_o bring_v those_o miracle_n which_o be_v father_v sar●m_n upon_o s._n thomas_n of_o canterbury_n aqua_fw-la thomae_fw-la quinquies_fw-la varians_fw-la colorem_fw-la in_o alas_o semel_fw-la transijt_fw-la quater_fw-la in_o cr●orem_fw-la ad_fw-la thomae_fw-la memoriam_fw-la quater_fw-la lux_fw-la descendit_fw-la et_fw-la in_o sancti_fw-la gloriam_fw-la cereos_fw-la accendit_fw-la the_o water_n of_o thomas_n do_v five_o time_n change_v her_o colour_n once_o it_o be_v turn_v into_o milk_n and_o four_o time_n into_o blood_n at_o thomas_n his_o monument_n four_o time_n there_o come_v down_o light_a and_o in_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o saint_n it_o kindle_v the_o taper_n hart._n i_o pray_v go_v to_o the_o purpose_n and_o leave_v these_o idle_a fancy_n which_o you_o bring_v in_o to_o play_v with_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o the_o portesse_n now_o and_o if_o it_o be_v what_o be_v it_o to_o the_o point_n in_o question_n rainoldes_n to_o the_o point_n in_o question_n as_o direct_v as_o may_v be_v for_o this_o thomas_n die_v secund_a upon_o occasion_n of_o a_o quarrel_n about_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n while_o he_o maintain_v appeal_n against_o the_o king_n to_o the_o pope_n now_o to_o prove_v that_o he_o stand_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o truth_n those_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v for_o that_o which_o they_o preach_v who_o have_v the_o grace_n of_o miracle_n be_v the_o truth_n say_v 6._o bristol_n add_v that_o s._n thomas_n of_o canterbury_n s._n thomas_n of_o aquine_n s._n francis_n s._n dominike_n and_o infinite_a other_o have_v that_o grace_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o put_v any_o difference_n between_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n with_o his_o apostle_n and_o of_o these_o man_n yet_o welfare_n their_o heart_n who_o reform_v your_o portesse_n for_o they_o have_v put_v out_o those_o miracle_n of_o s._n thomas_n of_o canterbury_n and_o many_o other_o which_o they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v i_o trow_v have_v they_o not_o know_v some_o difference_n between_o the_o miracle_n of_o these_o man_n and_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ._n but_o they_o have_v leave_v in_o as_o worthy_a a_o miracle_n as_o those_o of_o a_o other_o of_o bristowe_v miracle-worker_n even_o of_o s._n thomas_n of_o aquine_n and_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o call_v that_o a_o idle_a fancy_n though_o it_o be_v as_o idle_a with_o i_o as_o the_o former_a for_o aquinat_fw-la they_o report_v of_o he_o that_o when_o he_o be_v pray_v earnest_o at_o naples_n before_o the_o image_n of_o the_o crucifix_n he_o hear_v a_o voice_n 7._o the_o crucifix_n speak_v it_o say_v to_o he_o thoma_n thomas_z thou_o have_v write_v well_o of_o i_o thomas_n i_o shall_v have_v think_v for_o my_o part_n that_o the_o wooden_a crucifix_n of_o a_o love_a thankful_a hart_n have_v commend_v he_o because_o he_o do_v honour_v it_o with_o the_o fame_n honour_n that_o be_v due_a to_o god_n and_o 4._o write_v solemn_o that_o man_n ought_v to_o do_v so_o but_o pope_n quint._n pius_n the_o five_o the_o lorde-reforme_a of_o the_o portesse_n affirm_v that_o probata_fw-la the_o doctrine_n of_o thomas_n be_v approve_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o crucifix_n himself_o in_o this_o miracle_n and_o he_o know_v best_o the_o meaning_n ofit_n so_o that_o i_o perceyve_v this_o miracle_n be_v rather_o a_o dogmatic_a miracle_n as_o 5._o bristow●ermeth_v ●ermeth_z it_o then_o personal_a but_o whether_o personal_a or_o dogmatic_a it_o shall_v not_o persuade_v i_o that_o all_o be_v true_a which_o be_v write_v and_o teach_v by_o your_o dogmatic_a doctor_n thomas_n for_o as_o 2_o i_o have_v show_v he_o forge_v and_o bely_v the_o father_n notable_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n against_o the_o grecian_n i_o can_v hardly_o think_v that_o when_o the_o crucifix_n say_v thomas_n have_v write_v well_o it_o mean_v to_o approve_v his_o writing_n in_o that_o point_n or_o if_o the_o crucifix_n mean_v it_o the_o crucifix_n be_v to_o blame_v unless_o the_o fault_n be_v rather_o in_o some_o lie_a knave_n who_o speak_v out_o of_o the_o crucifix_n such_o 25._o feat_n there_o have_v be_v wrought_v in_o image_n ere_o now_o hart._n evil_a mind_n turn_v all_o thing_n to_o the_o worst_a pope_n pius_n the_o five_o do_v say_v of_o that_o miracle_n that_o it_o historia_fw-la be_v record_v in_o a_o godly_a story_n rainoldes_n but_o in_o what_o story_n pope_n pius_n do_v not_o say_v belike_o he_o mean_v antoninus_n of_o who_o you_o know_v what_o canus_n judge_v and_o his_o judgement_n therein_o be_v good_a hart._n yet_o you_o can_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o antoninus_n report_v many_o true_a thing_n and_o why_o may_v not_o that_o miracle_n i_o pray_v be_v one_o of_o they_o rainoldes_n a_o lie_a miracle_n no_o doubt_n as_o 11._o antoninus_n report_v it_o for_o he_o say_v that_o when_o thomas_n be_v command_v by_o pope_n gregory_n to_o come_v unto_o the_o council_n of_o lion_n and_o to_o bring_v with_o he_o that_o book_n which_o he_o have_v make_v by_o pope_n vrbane_n commandment_n against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o grecian_n whereof_o in_o that_o council_n they_o be_v to_o be_v convict_v before_o he_o go_v thither_o that_o voice_n be_v hear_v out_o of_o the_o crucifix_n by_o certain_a who_o watch_v thomas_n as_o he_o be_v pray_v on_o a_o certain_a night_n in_o s._n dominike_v coovent-church_n i_o say_v nothing_o here_o of_o the_o suspicious_a circumstance_n the_o time_n the_o night_n season_n the_o place_n the_o coovent-church_n the_o witness_n lie_v in_o wait_n the_o cause_n to_o prove_v that_o which_o shall_v be_v handle_v for_o the_o pope_n against_o the_o grecian_n in_o the_o council_n only_o this_o i_o say_v that_o see_v in_o that_o book_n against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o grecian_n thomas_n do_v falsify_v the_o write_n of_o s._n cyrill_n and_o of_o above_o six_o hundred_o father_n even_o the_o general_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n to_o make_v they_o bear_v witness_n for_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n the_o miracle_n pretend_v to_o have_v declare_v as_o from_o heaven_n that_o thomas_n do_v well_o in_o handle_v so_o the_o cause_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o lie_a miracle_n lie_v in_o respect_n
most_o superexcellent_a the_o first_o the_o chief_a see_v and_o say_v that_o she_o need_v not_o to_o help_v herself_o with_o these_o doubtful_a argument_n which_o be_v draw_v out_o of_o those_o epistle_n and_o put_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o gratian._n but_o if_o he_o be_v not_o cardinal_n when_o he_o give_v that_o judgement_n yet_o bellarmin_n be_v jesuit_n when_o he_o confirm_v it_o for_o when_o he_o read_v at_o rome_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o come_v to_o that_o argument_n of_o these_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o say_v that_o father_n turrian_n a_o learned_a man_n have_v defend_v they_o to_o be_v their_o own_o but_o he_o think_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n to_o be_v true_a hart._n how_o know_v you_o that_o he_o say_v so_o when_o he_o read_v at_o rome_n rainoldes_n one_o of_o your_o own_o friend_n and_o fellow_n rishton_n who_o be_v present_a tell_v i_o he_o hear_v he_o say_v so_o and_o i_o do_v the_o rather_o believe_v his_o report_n because_o whereas_o 5._o bellarmin_n himself_o have_v set_v in_o write_v the_o sum_n of_o those_o lecture_n he_o say_v though_o not_o altogether_o so_o much_o yet_o in_o effect_n for_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v say_v he_o but_o there_o be_v some_o error_n creep_v into_o they_o hart._n but_o he_o add_v that_o certes_o he_o think_v nevertheless_o that_o they_o be_v very_o ancient_a rainoldes_n and_o why_o because_o isidore_n make_v mention_n of_o they_o which_o reason_n that_o he_o therefore_o do_v think_v they_o very_o ancient_a because_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o they_o by_o isidore_n be_v as_o much_o in_o soft_a word_n as_o if_o he_o say_v he_o think_v they_o ancient_a howbeit_o not_o so_o ancient_a as_o they_o be_v pretend_v it_o may_v be_v that_o bellarmin_n if_o he_o be_v advertise_v that_o isidore_n be_v forge_v too_o will_v think_v they_o less_o ancient_a by_o one_o degree_n then_o yet_o he_o think_v but_o that_o which_o the_o jesuit_n be_v loath_a to_o deal_v with_o over_o rough_o the_o lawyer_n a_o man_n of_o better_a mind_n and_o bold_a spirit_n do_v plain_o avouch_v for_o he_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v clear_a and_o evident_a that_o those_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v before_o silvester_n be_v all_o false_a and_o counterfeit_a now_o silvester_n be_v pope_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n above_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ._n and_o so_o the_o exception_n which_o i_o make_v against_o your_o first_o band_n of_o pope_n who_o live_v three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o upward_o you_o see_v it_o be_v confirm_v by_o a_o famous_a lawyer_n a_o man_n of_o great_a judgement_n and_o of_o your_o own_o religion_n hart._n what_o famous_a lawyer_n be_v it_o or_o how_o do_v he_o confirm_v it_o rainoldes_n it_o be_v antonius_n contius_n the_o king_n professor_n of_o the_o law_n in_o the_o university_n of_o burges_n with_o who_o note_n allow_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o spanish_a &_o french_a king_n your_o canon-law_n be_v 1570._o print_v at_o antwerp_n by_o plantin_n in_o cont._n one_o of_o those_o note_n he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v bring_v rationes_fw-la many_o reason_n in_o his_o preface_n by_o which_o he_o have_v prove_v and_o ostendi_fw-la show_v manifest_o that_o esse_fw-la the_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v before_o silvester_n be_v all_o false_a and_o counterfeit_a behold_v he_o have_v show_v it_o not_o by_o one_o or_o two_o ghess_n but_o by_o many_o reason_n and_o that_o manifest_o hart._n but_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n which_o he_o have_v show_v it_o so_o by_o rainoldes_n nay_o i_o be_o bind_v to_o keep_v counsel_n in_o that_o for_o ●dduxi_fw-la the_o preface_n wherein_o he_o bring_v those_o reason_n be_v not_o print_v though_o i_o must_v clear_v plantin_n the_o printer_n from_o the_o fault_n for_o i_o cause_v a_o friend_n of_o i_o to_o ask_v of_o he_o why_o it_o be_v not_o print_v and_o what_o become_v of_o it_o whether_o a_o man_n may_v see_v it_o or_o no._n to_o who_o he_o make_v answer_v that_o the_o censor_n appoint_v to_o oversee_v book_n to_o be_v allow_v to_o the_o print_n will_v not_o suffer_v it_o to_o pass_v but_o what_o become_v of_o it_o he_o remember_v not_o nor_o know_v how_o to_o procure_v it_o they_o that_o do_v evil_a hate_v the_o light_n there_o be_v somewhat_o in_o that_o preface_n which_o the_o censor_n will_v not_o that_o all_o man_n shall_v see_v but_o clu●ent_fw-la the_o truth_n say_v tully_n which_o be_v press_v down_o by_o many_o lewd_a man_n do_v rise_v up_o often_o time_n by_o this_o one_o mean_n that_o either_o they_o who_o be_v crafty_a to_o deceive_v be_v not_o bold_a to_o enterprise_v so_o much_o as_o they_o devise_v or_o they_o who_o be_v bold_a enough_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n have_v not_o wit_n and_o subtlety_n to_o convey_v their_o practice_n which_o consideration_n of_o a_o wise_a orator_n the_o folly_n of_o your_o censor_n have_v prove_v to_o be_v true_a for_o though_o he_o be_v bold_a enough_o to_o leave_v out_o the_o preface_n of_o contius_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o craft_n enough_o to_o raze_v out_o that_o note_n which_o mention_v the_o preface_n and_o yet_o a_o little_a after_o to_o see_v the_o mischief_n of_o it_o how_o that_o shall_v escape_v his_o hand_n he_o have_v put_v in_o a_o note_n under_o contius_n his_o name_n which_o will_v have_v help_v well_o if_o he_o have_v raze_v out_o the_o other_o for_o cont._n upon_o a_o text_n of_o pope_n anacletus_fw-la he_o have_v make_v he_o say_v i_o know_v that_o insimulare_fw-la some_o affirm_v those_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o next_o succcede_v peter_n to_o be_v false_a and_o counterfeit_a but_o i_o will_v desire_v they_o to_o bring_v probationem_fw-la better_a proof_n special_o since_o they_o be_v find_v in_o all_o the_o course_n of_o canon_n that_o be_v extant_a collect_v isidoro_n by_o isidore_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o damasus_n which_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n this_o note_n be_v juggle_v in_o well_o by_o the_o censor_n with_o this_o subscription_n contius_n pity_v that_o he_o take_v not_o away_o the_o other_o note_n where_o contius_n be_v subscribe_v too_o hart._n why_o suspect_v you_o the_o censor_n that_o he_o shall_v make_v that_o note_n and_o not_o contius_n himself_o write_v it_o you_o have_v a_o lesson_n in_o s._n 13.7_o paul_n that_o charity_n be_v not_o suspicious_a rainoldes_n charity_n be_v not_o sottish_a neither_o i_o learn_v that_o lesson_n of_o he_o too_o for_o as_o it_o be_v a_o vice_n to_o suspect_v unjust_o so_o it_o be_v no_o virtue_n to_o believe_v unwise_o and_o s._n paul_n who_o say_v that_o charity_n believe_v all_o thing_n yet_o beléeve_v not_o that_o 23.16_o they_o mean_v he_o well_o of_o who_o he_o understand_v by_o his_o sister_n son_n that_o they_o will_v lie_v in_o wait_n to_o kill_v he_o charity_n believe_v all_o thing_n which_o a_o wise_a and_o godly_a man_n shall_v believe_v but_o to_o believe_v that_o contius_n write_v that_o note_n himself_o be_v great_a folly_n to_o the_o believer_n than_o charity_n to_o the_o censor_n for_o how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o a_o learned_a man_n the_o king_n professor_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v say_v concern_v the_o same_o epistle_n first_o i_o have_v show_v manifest_o by_o many_o reason_n that_o they_o be_v counterfeit_v and_o anon_o i_o know_v that_o some_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v counterfeit_a but_o i_o will_v desire_v they_o to_o bring_v better_a proof_n chief_o since_o the_o cause_n that_o be_v add_v there_o why_o he_o desire_v better_a proof_n be_v isidores_o authority_n inseruit_fw-la who_o collegerint_fw-la contius_n in_o that_o respect_n do_v discredit_v which_o note_n be_v print_v too_o and_o afterward_o again_o on_o annot._n other_o text_n of_o those_o epistle_n he_o note_v sundry_a point_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v forge_v and_o yet_o again_o on_o aliter_fw-la other_o he_o mention_v the_o proof_n thereof_o make_v in_o his_o preface_n yea_o and_o that_o be_v more_o upon_o the_o same_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o anacletus_fw-la on_o which_o that_o counterfeit_a note_n be_v coin_a provinciae_fw-la contius_n again_o note_v this_o epistle_n be_v false_o father_v on_o anacletus_fw-la monui_fw-la as_o i_o advertise_v in_o my_o preface_n see_v you_o not_o how_o right_o tully_n do_v observe_v that_o if_o either_o suttletie_n be_v bold_a or_o boldness_n crafty_a it_o will_v go_v hard_a with_o the_o truth_n the_o truth_n which_o be_v oppugn_v by_o those_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n shall_v have_v have_v one_o patron_n less_o to_o speak_v for_o she_o if_o your_o censor_n have_v be_v as_o politic_a to_o blot_v out_o the_o note_n touch_v the_o preface_n as_o he_o be_v hardy_a to_o leave_v the_o preface_n out_o and_o coin_n a_o new_a note_n against_o it_o and_o yet_o perhaps_o
manifest_a testimony_n that_o their_o prayer_n be_v offer_v in_o heaven_n unto_o god_n by_o any_o other_o person_n then_o 13.15_o by_o christ_n jesus_n 3.1_o the_o high_a priest_n of_o our_o profession_n 3.1_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n 2.5_o the_o only_a mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n and_o this_o do_v seem_v to_o be_v that_o angel_n that_o other_o angel_n of_o who_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o revelation_n 8.3_o an_o other_o angel_n come_v and_o stand_v before_o the_o altar_n have_v a_o golden_a censer_n and_o there_o be_v much_o odour_n give_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v put_v they_o into_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n on_o the_o golden_a altar_n which_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n and_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o odour_n which_o be_v put_v into_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n go_v up_o before_o god_n out_o of_o the_o angel_n hand_n for_o although_o the_o angel_n be_v 1.14_o minister_a spirit_n send_v forth_o to_o minister_v for_o the_o saint_n on_o earth_n who_o shall_v inherit_v salvation_n and_o therefore_o as_o 10.4_o they_o serve_v to_o certify_v they_o that_o their_o prayer_n be_v come_v up_o before_o god_n so_o they_o may_v rather_o offer_v their_o prayer_n to_o god_n than_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n who_o have_v no_o such_o ministry_n to_o serve_v the_o saint_n on_o earth_n yet_o because_o this_o angel_n stand_v with_o a_o censer_n at_o the_o altar_n of_o incense_n to_o burn_v perfume_n before_o god_n be_v set_v forth_o as_o do_v that_o duty_n 16.12_o which_o the_o high_a priest_n do_v figure_n in_o the_o law_n and_o 7.27_o our_o high_a priest_n be_v no_o create_a angel_n but_o he_o 1.16_o by_o who_o the_o angel_n be_v create_v even_o christ_n it_o follow_v that_o christ_n be_v mean_v by_o the_o angel_n to_o who_o this_o name_n be_v give_v oftentimes_o in_o 3.1_o scripture_n because_o he_o be_v a_o angel_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o messenger_n send_v by_o god_n his_o father_n to_o open_v his_o will_n unto_o his_o servant_n and_o work_v their_o salvation_n by_o his_o covenant_n and_o it_o may_v be_v that_o as_o god_n the_o father_n 20._o have_v say_v of_o he_o behold_v i_o send_v a_o angel_n 21._o do_v add_v my_o name_n be_v in_o he_o to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v 13.21_o god_n so_o to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o create_a angel_n who_o be_v often_o mention_v in_o the_o revelation_n s._n john_n do_v call_v he_o a_o other_o angel_n as_o differ_v from_o the_o rest_n not_o only_o in_o number_n but_o also_o in_o nature_n authority_n and_o dignity_n for_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v of_o the_o angel_n who_o 7.2_o have_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o live_a god_n who_o 8.5_o cast_v fire_n into_o the_o earth_n the_o angel_n blow_v their_o trumpet_n and_o pour_v out_o the_o plague_n of_o god_n who_o 10.1_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n clothe_v with_o a_o cloud_n and_o the_o rainbow_n upon_o his_o head_n and_o his_o face_n be_v as_o the_o sun_n &_o his_o foot_n as_o pillar_n of_o fire_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n a_o little_a book_n &_o set_v his_o right_a foot_n on_o the_o sea_n and_o his_o left_a foot_n on_o the_o land_n which_o be_v namely_o write_v of_o a_o other_o angel_n a_o other_o mighty_a angel_n as_o he_o be_v also_o call_v do_v if_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n be_v weigh_v best_o agree_v to_o christ._n but_o whether_o it_o be_v so_o or_o no_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o christ_n be_v the_o angel_n who_o put_v odour_n of_o most_o sweet_a perfume_n into_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n as_o our_o high_a priest_n and_o offer_v they_o to_o god_n his_o father_n to_o who_o 7.25_o he_o make_v always_o intercession_n for_o we_o and_o be_v not_o only_o for_o our_o prayer_n but_o for_o ourselves_o also_o 5.5_o a_o odour_n of_o a_o sweet_a smell_a savour_n before_o he_o wherefore_o since_o the_o scripture_n manifest_o show_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n offer_v the_o prayer_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n and_o not_o that_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n offer_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n on_o earth_n you_o may_v have_v be_v content_v to_o leave_v this_o honour_n unto_o christ_n and_o have_v suffer_v i_o to_o go_v forward_o with_o your_o reason_n about_o the_o offering_n in_o malachi_n for_o you_o see_v how_o we_o be_v fall_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o priest_n from_o priest_n to_o the_o mass_n from_o mass_n to_o the_o saint_n and_o if_o i_o shall_v follow_v the_o same_o vein_n on_o that_o which_o you_o have_v say_v of_o saint_n and_o touch_v your_o abuse_n who_o confess_v that_o the_o scripture_n give_v that_o name_n to_o faithful_a and_o holy_a person_n in_o earth_n yet_o to_o maintain_v your_o solemn_a invocation_n of_o dead_a man_n do_v make_v it_o proper_a not_o to_o saint_n in_o heaven_n but_o to_o they_o who_o it_o shall_v please_v sanctorum_fw-la the_o pope_n to_o sanctorum_fw-la canonize_v or_o 〈◊〉_d deify_v as_o ecclesiae_fw-la the_o master_n of_o his_o sacred_a ceremony_n term_v it_o wherein_o notwithstanding_o ●_o your_o doctor_n also_o teach_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v and_o canonize_v a_o wicked_a person_n for_o a_o saint_n so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v even_o by_o your_o own_o doctrine_n that_o in_o your_o church-seruice_n you_o worship_v they_o as_o saint_n who_o spirit_n be_v in_o hell_n with_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n i_o say_v if_o i_o shall_v flit_v thus_o from_o point_n to_o point_n on_o every_o occasion_n that_o your_o speech_n do_v offer_v we_o shall_v confound_v our_o conference_n and_o never_o make_v a_o end_n of_o the_o point_n in_o question_n wherefore_o let_v other_o question_n i_o pray_v be_v reserve_v to_o their_o due_a place_n touchinge_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n and_o now_o to_o finish_v this_o touch_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n let_v we_o go_v forward_o with_o your_o masseprieste_n that_o so_o we_o may_v return_v to_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n of_o the_o six_o reason_n therefore_o which_o you_o allege_v out_o of_o d._n allen_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o clean_a offering_n which_o malachi_n do_v write_v of_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o not_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n the_o first_o be_v convince_v clear_o to_o be_v false_a and_o that_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o same_o father_n who_o he_o will_v prove_v it_o by_o for_o sacrificatur_fw-la the_o word_n which_o note_v a_o outward_a sacrifice_n with_o he_o with_o all_o they_o be_v 16._o incense_n of_o sweet_a perfume_n and_o odour_n but_o incense_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v take_v for_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n as_o you_o grant_v the_o word_n then_o which_o he_o do_v build_v the_o mass_n upon_o be_v not_o always_o take_v proper_o in_o scripture_n for_o the_o act_n of_o outward_a sacrifice_n hart._n but_o he_o do_v not_o only_o urge_v the_o word_n to_o sacrifice_v for_o which_o indeed_o the_o father_n and_o the_o hebrew_n text_n have_v incense_v but_o the_o word_n to_o offer_v and_o if_o that_o be_v always_o take_v proper_o for_o the_o act_n of_o outward_a sacrifice_n his_o reason_n be_v of_o force_n still_o rainoldes_n but_o the_o force_n of_o his_o reason_n do_v lie_v upon_o the_o word_n to_o sacrifice_v not_o to_o offer_v for_o 16._o himself_o grant_v that_o lay_a man_n yea_o woman_n too_o be_v say_v to_o offer_v proper_o and_o true_o when_o as_o in_o 26.10_o the_o old_a law_n the_o tithe_n and_o first_o fruit_n command_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o levite_n and_o the_o poor_a be_v present_v before_o god_n so_o they_o present_a bread_n and_o wine_n for_o the_o communion_n or_o alm_n for_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o needy_a or_o any_o earthly_a gift_n and_o offering_n for_o holy_a use_n as_o ●l●●mo●ynis_fw-la the_o father_n show_n wherefore_o though_o the_o word_n to_o offer_v be_v always_o take_v proper_o for_o the_o act_n of_o outward_a offering_n it_o prove_v not_o the_o offering_n of_o your_o outward_a sacrifice_n since_o 2.11_o the_o wise_a man_n offer_v gift_n unto_o christ_n 5.24_o the_o faithful_a jew_n at_o the_o altar_n 1._o lay_v man_n and_o woman_n at_o the_o mass_n and_o yet_o nether_a any_o of_o they_o be_v massingpriest_n nor_o their_o offering_n massing-host_n much_o less_o do_v it_o prove_v it_o as_o malachi_n appli_v it_o to_o the_o offering_n of_o incense_n for_o as_o incense_n signify_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n so_o to_o offer_v incense_n must_v be_v to_o sacrifice_v those_o prayer_n but_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o prayer_n be_v a_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n wherefore_o the_o word_n to_o offer_v do_v not_o prove_v your_o outward_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o so_o the_o first_o reason_n be_v go_v the_o second_o follow_v which_o be_v no_o sound_a than_o the_o former_a for_o why_o do_v allen_n say_v that_o the_o
that_o the_o apostle_n do_v ordain_v they_o rainoldes_n that_o rule_n of_o s._n austin_n be_v probable_a not_o necessary_a for_o though_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o there_o be_v no_o custom_n observe_v by_o the_o church_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o it_o have_v not_o from_o the_o apostle_n chief_o see_v 21._o christian_n do_v vary_v then_o so_o much_o in_o rite_n of_o all_o sort_n yet_o they_o may_v either_o have_v take_v up_o or_o keep_v of_o that_o they_o have_v before_o some_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v not_o unto_o they_o but_o admit_v his_o rule_n as_o a_o undouted_a principle_n to_o your_o most_o advantage_n and_o yet_o be_v you_o no_o near_o the_o proof_n of_o those_o ceremony_n for_o how_o can_v you_o prove_v that_o incense_n light_n vestment_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o baggage_n be_v use_v at_o that_o time_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n hart._n incense_n to_o have_v be_v use_v 3._o i_o have_v prove_v by_o s._n denys_n areopagita_n light_n by_o s._n austin_n rainoldes_n but_o you_o have_v not_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v use_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n either_o by_o s._n austin_n or_o by_o s._n denys_n 6._o nay_o that_o denys_n who_o so_o ever_o he_o be_v do_v prove_v the_o contrary_n for_o in_o his_o description_n of_o the_o mass_n as_o you_o call_v it_o there_o be_v neither_o light_n nor_o vestment_n nor_o crossinge_n nor_o all_o the_o other_o ceremony_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v not_o use_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n when_o that_o denys_n write_v as_o for_o incense_v howsoever_o it_o creep_v into_o that_o church_n in_o the_o which_o he_o live_v it_o appear_v by_o the_o write_n of_o 42._o tertullian_n and_o 7_o arnobius_n that_o the_o church_n use_v it_o not_o in_o their_o day_n neither_o be_v the_o cense_a which_o denys_n speak_v of_o like_a to_o you_o then_o i_o show_v your_o blessing_n be_v like_a to_o s._n augustine_n for_o 3._o he_o have_v it_o only_o once_o about_o the_o church_n but_o in_o missam_fw-la your_o solemn_a mass_n it_o be_v use_v often_o and_o to_o sundry_a thing_n to_o the_o cross_n to_o relic_n to_o image_n to_o candlestick_n to_o the_o altar_n the_o low_a part_n of_o it_o and_o the_o high_a to_o the_o priest_n to_o the_o book_n to_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n thrice_o above_o the_o chalice_n and_o the_o host_n and_o thrice_o about_o they_o to_o the_o altar_n and_o the_o priest_n again_o and_o again_o to_o the_o choir_n to_o the_o deacon_n to_o the_o subdeacon_n to_o the_o people_n and_o in_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a to_o the_o sacrament_n also_o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o elevation_n so_o that_o if_o the_o word_n of_o the_o 5._o trent-councell_n be_v weigh_v with_o your_o practice_n you_o will_v lose_v the_o countenance_n of_o that_o which_o denys_n show_v to_o for_o with_o he_o it_o be_v incense_v in_o the_o singular_a number_n your_o mass_n and_o the_o council_n hau●_n thymiamata_fw-la incense_v in_o the_o plural_a by_o the_o which_o word_n if_o the_o council_n mean_v to_o note_v all_o the_o censinge_n that_o be_v use_v in_o massing_n as_o they_o do_v of_o likelihood_n then_o neither_o denys_n make_v for_o your_o massing-incense_n though_o whatsoever_o he_o make_v he_o make_v nought_o for_o your_o reason_n because_o he_o prove_v not_o that_o it_o be_v use_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n now_o the_o light_n which_o your_o jesuite_n have_v find_v in_o s._n 2._o austin_n make_v less_o a_o great_a deal_n for_o it_o for_o s._n noctis_fw-la austin_n call_v the_o light_n which_o they_o use_v 1_o light_n of_o the_o night_n because_o they_o do_v use_v they_o in_o the_o night_n time_n when_o they_o meet_v at_o prayer_n 20.8_o as_o christian_n be_v wont_a but_o your_o massing-light_n be_v use_v in_o the_o day_n time_n when_o the_o sun_n shine_v a_o thing_n perhaps_o observe_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o idololatri●_n of_o idolatrous_a heathen_n not_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n hart._n yes_o that_o christian_a church_n have_v also_o light_n burn_v in_o the_o bright_a sunshine_n while_o the_o gospel_n be_v read_v s._n vigilant_a jerom_n be_v a_o witness_n and_o before_o s._n jerom_n his_o master_n pas●ha_n nazianzen_n make_v mention_n of_o it_o and_o ●rthodox●s_fw-la athanasius_n before_o they_o both_o wherefore_o out_o of_o doubt_n it_o be_v a_o ancient_a custom_n and_o that_o very_a general_n rainoldes_n as_o you_o say_v if_o it_o be_v witness_v by_o these_o three_o doctor_n s._n jerom_n of_o europe_n nazianzen_n of_o asia_n &_o athanasius_n of_o africa_n but_o he_o who_o say_v they_o witness_v it_o have_v not_o read_v they_o i_o think_v hart._n but_o i_o think_v he_o have_v or_o rather_o i_o be_o sure_a of_o it_o for_o d._n 2._o stapleton_n say_v it_o in_o his_o comparison_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o roman_a church_n mass_n with_o the_o lord_n supper_n of_o the_o protestant_n wherein_o as_o he_o allege_v these_o doctor_n for_o this_o point_n so_o he_o prove_v all_o thing_n which_o your_o supper_n want_v and_o our_o mass_n have_v to_o be_v apostolic_a rainoldes_n he_o prove_v nay_o he_o promise_v to_o prove_v they_o apostolic_a for_o in_o very_a truth_n he_o prove_v not_o one_o not_o one_o of_o all_o those_o thing_n wherein_o your_o mass_n differ_v from_o our_o lord_n supper_n no_o more_o than_o he_o prove_v this_o of_o light_n burn_v in_o the_o bright_a sunshine_n in_o the_o which_o he_o notable_o abuse_v their_o name_n who_o he_o do_v cite_v to_o prove_v it_o for_o in_o persecut_n athanasius_n the_o taper_n of_o the_o church_n be_v mention_v only_o but_o that_o they_o be_v light_v in_o the_o daytime_n while_o the_o gospel_n be_v read_v there_o be_v no_o such_o word_n pascha_fw-la nazianzene_n speak_v of_o light_n that_o be_v burn_v upon_o easter-even_a but_o 〈◊〉_d to_o lighten_v the_o night_n he_o say_v not_o the_o day_n hart._n but_o speak_v he_o there_o of_o those_o night-lighte_n alone_o and_o of_o no_o other_o light_n rainoldes_n he_o speak_v of_o a_o other_o light_n but_o spiritual_a for_o he_o say_v that_o the_o most_o bright_a shine_a light_n follow_v the_o candle_n that_o do_v go_v before_o it_o hart._n why_o that_o be_v it_o that_o show_v the_o ceremony_n which_o we_o talk_v off_o for_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o carry_v candle_n before_o the_o gospel_n when_o they_o do_v read_v it_o rainoldes_n they_o be_v wont_v afterward_o but_o we_o speak_v of_o nazianzene_n and_o he_o mean_v nothing_o less_o for_o by_o the_o light_n he_o signify_v christ_n 8.11_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n and_o by_o 5.35_o the_o candle_n john_n baptist_n 1.76_o who_o go_v before_o christ_n to_o prepare_v his_o way_n the_o light_n say_v he_o shine_v most_o excellent_o bright_a follow_v the_o candle_n that_o do_v go_v before_o it_o and_o 1._o the_o word_n 23._o the_o voice_n and_o 3.29_o the_o bridegroom_n 〈◊〉_d the_o bride_n man_n or_o friend_n who_o bring_v the_o bride_n to_o he_o be_v this_o d._n stapletons_n proof_n out_o of_o nazianzene_n for_o burn_a taper_n in_o the_o day_n time_n hart._n of_o nazianzene_n i_o know_v not_o but_o certain_o s._n jerom_n be_v a_o witness_n of_o it_o against_o vigilanti●s_n rainoldes_n yet_o these_o be_v s._n jeroms_n own_o word_n in_o vigilant_a that_o treatise_n we_o do_v light_a accendimus_fw-la taper_n not_o in_o the_o bright●day-time_n as_o thou_o do_v vain_o slander_v we_o but_o by_o this_o comfort_n to_o ease_v the_o darkness_n of_o the_o night_n hart._n but_o he_o add_v that_o church_n of_o the_o east_n have_v light_n burn_v in_o the_o daytime_n while_o the_o gospel_n be_v read_v thereby_o to_o show_v their_o joy_n rainoldes_n but_o nether_a this_o usage_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n be_v the_o same_o that_o you_o be_v for_o they_o do_v keep_v light_n while_o the_o gospel_n be_v read_v and_o put_v they_o out_o after_o which_o rite_n 24._o you_o have_v also_o and_o some_o where_o have_v perhaps_o yet_o but_o the_o general_a rite_n which_o you_o have_v get_v now_o of_o burn_a taper_n still_o before_o the_o gospel_n and_o after_o that_o in_o s._n jeroms_n time_n not_o only_o be_v unborn_a in_o the_o we●●_n but_o in_o the_o ●ast_n too_o though_o if_o the_o east_n have_v use_v it_o yet_o nether_a be_v it_o prove_v so_o by_o your_o reason_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v ordain_v it_o because_o it_o be_v not_o use_v in_o the_o western_a church_n &_o therefore_o not_o through_o the_o whole_a world_n howbeit_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o there_o be_v good_a reason_n why_o your_o church_n shall_v use_v it_o for_o idololatr_n tertullian_n say_v let_v they_o light_a candle_n daily_a who_o have_v no_o light_n tenebrarum_fw-la the_o testimony_n of_o darkness_n do_v well_o beseem_v they_o hart._n you_o may_v bring_v tertullians_n werde_n when_o you_o have_v prove_v that_o we_o have_v
be_v rom._n not_o three_o year_n bishop_n or_o if_o because_o cyprian_n do_v write_v it_o to_o the_o pope_n you_o have_v such_o a_o prejudice_n that_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n peculiar_a you_o may_v know_v that_o he_o write_v the_o same_o florentium_fw-la to_o a_o other_o express_o of_o himself_o thence_o have_v schism_n &_o heresy_n spring_v &_o do_v spring_n that_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v one_o and_o rule_v the_o church_n be_v despise_v by_o the_o proud_a presumption_n of_o certain_a man_n wherefore_o though_o your_o 12.31_o rhemist_n and_o point_n other_o of_o the_o pope_n friend_n do_v ply_v the_o box_n with_o that_o say_n of_o one_o priest_n &_o one_o judge_n for_o the_o time_n in_o christ_n steed_n yet_o in_o very_a truth_n it_o make_v as_o much_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n as_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o more_o be_v stapletons_n blame_n who_o know_v and_o confess_v the_o same_o not_o only_o 4._o otherwhere_o but_o in_o 1._o this_o very_a work_n of_o his_o principle_n too_o yet_o in_o lectorem_fw-la the_o end_n thereof_o abridge_v it_o to_o the_o pope_n marvel_v that_o in_o his_o preface_n to_o gregory_n he_o pass_v it_o he_o may_v have_v allege_v it_o better_o than_o he_o have_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n which_o title_n be_v give_v in_o 2._o victor_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o to_o the_o bishop_n and_o touch_v less_o the_o papacy_n there_o then_o in_o s._n gregory_n in_o who_o it_o do_v not_o prove_v it_o as_o chapter_n i_o have_v declare_v marry_o that_o which_o follow_v be_v of_o great_a show_n out_o of_o ambroses_n commentary_n on_o s._n paul_n to_o timothee_n where_o damasus_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o time_n be_v call_v ruler_n of_o the_o church_n but_o first_o whatsoever_o he_o be_v who_o write_v that_o it_o be_v not_o s._n ambrose_n the_o famous_a bishop_n of_o milan_n on_o who_o be_v false_o father_v the_o commentary_n on_o s._n paul_n as_o your_o august_n divine_n of_o lovan_n do_v observe_v and_o testify_v next_o the_o word_n themselves_o which_o be_v in_o that_o autour_fw-fr on_o mention_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n the_o ruler_n whereof_o at_o this_o day_n be_v damasus_n be_v not_o in_o my_o judgement_n the_o autour_n own_o word_n but_o a_o gloze_n creep_v in_o among_o they_o for_o whereas_o s._n paul_n write_v unto_o timothee_n declare_v why_o he_o do_v so_o to_z weet_z that_o thou_o may_v know_v how_o thou_o ought_v to_o behave_v thyself_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n 3._o the_o commentary_n thereon_o do_v expound_v it_o thus_o i_o write_v unto_o thou_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v how_o to_o govern_v the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n that_o whereas_o all_o the_o world_n be_v god_n yet_o the_o church_n be_v call_v his_o house_n the_o ruler_n whereof_o at_o this_o day_n be_v damasus_n for_o the_o world_n be_v naught_o trouble_v with_o sundry_a error_n therefore_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o truth_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v say_v to_o be_v there_o where_o he_o be_v fear_v according_a to_o his_o will_n in_o the_o which_o word_n if_o that_o of_o damasus_n be_v omit_v the_o l●ter_n clawse_v contain_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o former_a will_v cleave_v thereunto_o more_o suant_o and_o fit_o which_o make_v i_o to_o think_v that_o it_o be_v not_o pitch_v in_o thetext_n by_o the_o autour_fw-fr but_o find_v a_o ●hinke_v and_o so_o come_v in_o as_o ●odie_fw-mi a_o other_o gloze_n of_o damasus_n successor_n have_v do_v into_o 2._o optatus_n and_o i_o think_v it_o the_o rather_o because_o some_o be_v persuade_v by_o manifold_a conference_n as_o your_o 4._o lovanist_n note_v that_o the_o book_n of_o question_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n entitle_v to_o s._n austin_n &_o this_o to_o s._n ambrose_n be_v the_o same_o autour_n for_o chron._n he_o who_o write_v that_o book_n be_v not_o alive_a of_o lykelihoode_n when_o damasus_n be_v pope_n howbeit_o if_o he_o be_v too_o and_o of_o a_o kind_a ●ffection_n to_o rome_n 115._o where_o he_o live_v think_v good_a to_o mention_v he_o the_o word_n which_o he_o use_v in_o latin_a cvius_fw-la hodie_fw-la rector_n est_fw-la damasus_n might_n mean_v that_o damasus_n be_v a_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n not_o as_o 3.15_o you_o english_a it_o the_o ruler_n which_o to_o have_v be_v so_o it_o appear_v far_a by_o the_o word_n at_o this_o day_n speak_v with_o a_o relation_n to_o the_o day_n of_o timothee_n that_o as_o he_o do_v govern_v the_o church_n in_o paul_n time_n so_o at_o that_o present_a be_v damasus_n ruler_n of_o it_o wherefore_o since_o timothee_n be_v 1.3_o place_v at_o ephesus_n to_o set_v that_o church_n in_o order_n not_o to_o rule_v the_o whole_a damasus_n may_v be_v call_v a_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o he_o be_v sacerdos_fw-la bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o s._n symmachum_fw-la ambrose_n term_v he_o though_o he_o be_v not_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o universal_a s._n austin_n be_v the_o last_o o●_n they_o who_o testimony_n you_o cite_v and_o the_o preeminence_n of_o a_o high_a room_n whereof_o ●_o he_o make_v mention_n to_o boniface_n the_o first_o import_v a_o prerogative_n of_o honour_n over_o other_o not_o soveraintie_n of_o power_n a_o prerogative_n of_o honour_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o 3._o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n which_o 〈◊〉_d give_v that_o prerogative_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 2d_o because_o that_o city_n reign_v not_o soveraintie_n of_o power_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n where_o c●lestinum_n he_o deny_v that_o to_o the_o same_o boniface_n to_o who_o he_o grant_v this_o preeminence_n it_o be_v therefore_o only_o the_o dignity_n of_o place_n which_o s._n austin_n mean_v by_o the_o high_a room_n as_o 4._o else_o where_o have_v name_v cyprian_a olympius_n and_o other_o ancient_a writer_n he_o say_v that_o innocentius_n be_v loco_fw-la after_o they_o in_o time_n before_o they_o in_o place_n because_o they_o be_v bishop_n of_o inferior_a city_n and_o he_o of_o the_o roman_a hart._n nay_o but_o s._n 16●_n austin_n say_v in_o plain_a term_n that_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o apostolic_a ●_o see_v have_v floorish_v in_o that_o church_n still_o rainoldes_n but_o s._n austin_n add_v in_o as_o plain_a term_n that_o bishop_n may_v reserve_v their_o case_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o their_o fellow-bishop_n chief_o of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n and_o that_o a_o general_a council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n in_o judge_v of_o those_o cause_n too_o which_o be_v a_o clear_a proof_n that_o by_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v he_o mean_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v chief_a of_o other_o church_n as_o i_o say_v in_o honour_n not_o in_o power_n for_o in_o power_n all_o other_o at_o least_o the_o apostolic_a that_o be_v in_o which_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v make_v equal_a with_o it_o but_o among_o all_o in_o which_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o have_v teach_v the_o faith_n the_o roman_a for_o honour_n &_o credit_n have_v the_o chiefty_a and_o thus_o have_v i_o discharge_v myself_o of_o my_o promise_n which_o be_v that_o i_o will_v yield_v unto_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n if_o you_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o say_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n allege_v and_o apply_v right_o for_o none_o of_o all_o they_o which_o you_o have_v allege_v neither_o of_o any_o other_o church_n nor_o of_o the_o roman_n itself_o do_v avouch_v it_o whereby_o the_o shameless_a vanity_n of_o 14._o bristol_n may_v be_v see_v who_o be_v not_o content_v to_o say_v of_o all_o the_o father_n that_o they_o be_v papist_n add_v that_o in_o familiar_a talk_n among_o ourselves_o we_o be_v not_o afeard_a plain_o to_o confess_v it_o the_o lord_n who_o be_v witness_n of_o our_o thought_n and_o speech_n know_v that_o we_o be_v lewd_o sclaunder_v herein_o and_o for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o be_o so_o far_o off_o from_o confess_v plain_o that_o they_o be_v all_o papist_n that_o i_o have_v plain_o declare_v and_o confirm_v not_o one_o of_o they_o to_o have_v be_v for_o the_o very_a be_v and_o essence_n of_o a_o papist_n consist_v in_o opinion_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n but_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v not_o allow_v by_o any_o of_o the_o father_n not_o one_o then_o of_o all_o the_o father_n be_v a_o papist_n wherefore_o if_o you_o have_v the_o father_n in_o such_o reverend_a regard_n and_o estimation_n as_o you_o pretend_v m._n hart_n let_v if_o not_o the_o scripture_n yet_o the_o father_n move_v you_o to_o forsake_v papistry_n and_o give_v to_o every_o pastor_n and_o church_n their_o own_o right_a whereof_o christ_n have_v possess_v
the_o youth_n in_o his_o pasquines_n nor_o poor_a man_n have_v cause_n to_o stand_v in_o doubt_n of_o he_o though_o he_o threaten_v be_v arm_v with_o a_o leaver_n and_o a_o dishclout_n that_o a_o will_v quell_v all_o who_o stand_v in_o his_o way_n &_o crush_v they_o in_o piece_n and_o if_o the_o parasite_n of_o the_o pope_n think_v that_o to_o be_v lightning_n which_o he_o have_v ●●asht_v to_o burn_v england_n sure_o it_o be_v such_o lightning_n as_o be_v after_o the_o 6._o poet_n the_o lightning_n of_o salmoneus_n who_o shake_v oft_o a_o torch_n do_v counterfeit_v the_o thunder_a sound_n and_o lightning_n flame_n of_o heaven_n but_o such_o kind_n of_o lightning_n although_o they_o daunt_v the_o waver_a greek_n and_o town_n of_o elis_n who_o king_n be_v salmoneus_n yet_o they_o daunt_v not_o the_o unuincible_a christian_n and_o city_n of_o the_o live_a god_n who_o king_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o let_v he_o who_o flash_v it_o take_v heed_n if_o he_o be_v wise_a lest_o his_o foolish_a lightning_n as_o 1._o they_o say_v it_o happen_v to_o the_o lightner_n salmoneus_n be_v revenge_v with_o true_a lightning_n of_o almighty_a god_n to_o the_o utter_a ruin_n of_o himself_o his_o town_n and_o citizen_n for_o the_o church_n which_o be_v 16.13_o lead_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n into_o all_o truth_n have_v be_v already_o teach_v by_o he_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o shall_v be_v teach_v far_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n what_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o the_o lightning_n of_o bristol_n and_o the_o light_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o lightning_n of_o bristol_n the_o heat_n whereof_o do_v hurt_v the_o body_n which_o it_o strike_v the_o light_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o beam_n whereof_o delight_n the_o man_n to_o who_o it_o shine_v the_o lightning_n evil_a and_o pestilent_a which_o blind_v they_o who_o see_v and_o kill_v they_o who_o live_v the_o light_n good_a and_o healthful_a which_o give_v sight_n unto_o the_o blind_a and_o life_n unto_o the_o dead_a neither_o be_v we_o without_o many_o godly_a man_n of_o excellent_a authority_n learning_n and_o judgement_n even_o among_o they_o who_o 34._o this_o tertullus_n name_v reprochef●lly_o 3●_n great_a master_n who_o can_v have_v show_v this_o long_a ago_o howbeit_o they_o have_v stay_v hitherto_o from_o do_v it_o either_o because_o they_o think_v his_o folly_n be_v refute_v before_o they_o be_v write_v for_o that_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o popish_a writer_n he_o bring_v no_o new_a matter_n but_o scour_v up_o old_a rusty_a stuff_n as_o 3●_n one_o of_o they_o do_v note_v long_o since_o or_o because_o they_o purpose_v first_o to_o encounter_v with_o such_o as_o have_v write_v before_o and_o more_o pithy_o intend_v to_o deal_v after_o with_o the_o rest_n in_o due_a time_n as_o rastell_n a_o other_o signify_v of_o late_a that_o he_o mean_v or_o because_o the_o controversy_n be_v sufficient_o travel_v in_o by_o many_o they_o think_v that_o they_o may_v well_o cease_v from_o this_o labour_n though_o the_o papist_n cease_v not_o from_o their_o impudency_n as_o 28.11_o jeremie_n have_v answer_v hananiah_n once_o give_v he_o no_o answer_n when_o he_o repeat_v his_o error_n or_o because_o perhaps_o some_o have_v no_o leisure_n from_o their_o weighty_a charge_n of_o feed_v the_o church_n some_o list_v not_o to_o strive_v with_o such_o a_o rail_a person_n some_o while_o they_o think_v that_o other_o have_v take_v it_o in_o hand_n do_v let_v it_o alone_o all_o either_o remember_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n that_o 4._o thou_o must_v not_o always_o answer_v a_o fool_n lest_o thou_o become_v like_o he_o or_o if_o it_o be_v requisite_a to_o 5._o answer_v he_o now_o lest_o he_o seem_v wise_a in_o his_o own_o conceit_n they_o strain_v courtesy_n who_o shall_v do_v it_o for_o my_o part_n lest_o the_o philistine_n shall_v vaunt_v any_o long_o as_o if_o their_o be_v no_o man_n among_o the_o israelite_n that_o dare_v fight_v with_o goliath_n or_o 17.10_o the_o israelite_n be_v grieve_v with_o hear_v the_o host_n of_o the_o live_a god_n to_o be_v so_o defy_v of_o a_o uncircumcised_a philistin_n i_o purpose_v through_o god_n grace_n though_o perhaps_o goliath_n will_v have_v disdain_v i_o as_o a_o child_n yet_o i_o purpose_v to_o set_v upon_o he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o god_n of_o the_o host_n of_o israel_n but_o when_o i_o have_v prepare_v myself_o to_o the_o battle_n and_o choose_v smooth_a stone_n out_o of_o the_o brook_n of_o god_n word_n 10.4_o which_o be_v mighty_a through_o god_n to_o cast_v down_o hold_v &_o every_o high_a thing_n that_o be_v exalt_v against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n i_o hear_v that_o the_o matter_n be_v dispatch_v already_o by_o motive_n a_o stout_a and_o faithful_a soldier_n of_o christ_n by_o who_o many_o philistine_n have_v before_o be_v conquer_v who_o work_n as_o i_o understand_v since_o be_v at_o the_o press_n too_o and_o shall_v be_v short_o publish_v wherefore_o lay_v now_o aside_o my_o former_a purpose_n i_o think_v on_o that_o demand_n and_o promise_v of_o bristol_n touch_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n wherein_o he_o do_v challenge_v and_o offer_v we_o the_o combat_n for_o whereas_o a_o country_n man_n of_o we_o under_o the_o title_n of_o a_o unlearned_a christian_a conceal_v his_o own_o name_n have_v set_v forth_o a_o book_n touch_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n &_o 〈◊〉_d church_n 34._o bristol_n will_v he_o to_o set_v out_o his_o book_n and_o put_v his_o name_n to_o it_o with_o approbation_n of_o our_o rabbin_n and_o with_o privilege_n and_o promise_v that_o he_o shall_v quick_o see_v it_o answer_v this_o book_n have_v i_o seek_v for_o but_o can_v not_o fall_v upon_o it_o all_o the_o copy_n of_o it_o as_o i_o guess_v be_v sold._n neither_o know_v i_o how_o to_o speak_v with_o the_o author_n who_o have_v conceal_v his_o name_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o for_o good_a cause_n but_o to_o satisfy_v if_o not_o whole_o yet_o as_o far_o as_o i_o may_v the_o challenge_n of_o bristol_n i_o have_v set_v out_o this_o little_a treatise_n of_o the_o same_o point_n with_o the_o autour_n name_n thereto_o &_o approbation_n not_o of_o rabbin_n who_o we_o leave_v to_o that_o synagogue_n who_o 7_o ruler_n love_v to_o be_v call_v rabbi_n rabbi_n master_n &_o doctor_n but_o of_o grave_n and_o learned_a man_n who_o it_o concern_v which_o thing_n i_o hope_v will_n like_o he_o so_o much_o the_o better_a because_o it_o comprise_v not_o only_o that_o question_n touch_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n that_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v set_v out_o but_o certain_a other_o also_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n chief_o touch_v the_o church_n whereof_o he_o have_v only_o the_o bare_a name_n to_o boast_v of_o and_o i_o look_v for_o a_o answer_n so_o much_o the_o soon_o because_o there_o be_v now_o four_o year_n past_a since_o demand_n he_o promise_v a_o latin_a book_n to_o which_o whether_o it_o be_v come_v abroad_o already_o or_o to_o come_v short_o he_o may_v join_v if_o it_o please_v he_o a_o answer_n to_o these_o conclusion_n wherein_o if_o he_o think_v it_o meet_v for_o he_o to_o deal_v there_o be_v three_o thing_n both_o easy_a to_o be_v do_v and_o reasonable_a in_o my_o judgement_n which_o i_o will_v request_v he_o one_o be_v that_o he_o will_v set_v down_o the_o text_n of_o my_o conclusion_n whole_o with_o his_o answer_n as_o i_o have_v determine_v to_o do_v with_o his_o demand_n that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v what_o he_o confute_v and_o how_o a_o other_o that_o he_o will_v not_o kick_v against_o the_o prick_v that_o he_o will_v yield_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o not_o go_v about_o to_o darken_v the_o clear_a light_n of_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n with_o cavil_n and_o slander_n the_o third_o that_o if_o he_o be_v ashamed_a to_o say_v the_o truth_n prevail_v against_o i_o yet_o in_o reprove_v such_o thing_n as_o he_o assay_v to_o reprove_v he_o will_v deal_v more_o sound_o and_o sincere_o then_o d._n stapleton_n have_v do_v in_o his_o doctrinal_a principle_n of_o faith_n a_o work_n more_o full_a of_o word_n than_o truth_n for_o to_o confute_v our_o doctrine_n 4._o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o company_n of_o god_n elect_v and_o choose_v which_o we_o teach_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o it_o be_v true_a he_o teach_v 5._o that_o evil_a man_n be_v mingle_v in_o the_o church_n with_o good_a the_o reprobate_a with_o the_o elect_a which_o thing_n be_v also_o true_a in_o the_o militant_a church_n but_o true_a thing_n agree_v with_o true_a thing_n ne●●her_o do_v one_o truth_n overthrow_v a_o other_o we_o hold_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v commend_v to_o we_o in_o the_o creed_n be_v the_o whole_a company_n of_o
that_o we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n because_o of_o the_o church_n if_o he_o come_v as_o near_o to_o the_o meaning_n of_o bohemos_n cusanus_fw-la as_o he_o do_v to_o his_o word_n that_o he_o think_v the_o scripture_n credit_n and_o authority_n depend_v of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n impart_v authority_n canonical_a as_o 2._o pighius_fw-la express_o say_v unto_o the_o scripture_n he_o have_v a_o hard_a forehead_n than_o i_o think_v he_o have_v yet_o 3._o andradius_fw-la the_o expounder_n and_o patron_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o trent_n speak_v much_o more_o modest_o and_o religious_o to_o geve_v he_o his_o due_a praise_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o first_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o have_v not_o from_o man_n but_o from_o god_n not_o from_o the_o church_n but_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o then_o he_o conclude_v thereof_o that_o it_o be_v detestable_a to_o teach_v that_o either_o profane_a book_n may_v be_v make_v canonical_a by_o the_o church_n &_o bishop_n or_o such_o as_o be_v certain_o canonical_a may_v be_v refuse_v of_o the_o which_o thing_n to_o affirm_v the_o one_o he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o notorious_a impudency_n the_o other_o of_o madness_n and_o impiety_n not_o to_o be_v suffer_v o_o that_o andradius_fw-la have_v likewise_o detest_v the_o 17.4_o cup_n of_o the_o whore_n abomination_n in_o other_o thing_n or_o since_o he_o be_v dead_a i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o all_o christian_n who_o of_o godly_a mind_n mislike_v somewhat_o in_o she_o and_o who_o do_v not_o mislike_v somewhat_o will_v mislike_v the_o rest_n of_o all_o her_o filthiness_n too_o nor_o only_o be_v christian_n almost_o as_o agrippa_n but_o like_o both_o almost_o and_o altogether_o to_o paul_n conclusion_n as_o 26.29_o paul_n do_v wish_v to_o he_o to_o the_o which_o end_n that_o i_o may_v help_v they_o forward_o as_o much_o as_o lay_v in_o i_o i_o have_v do_v the_o best_a i_o can_v to_o heal_v the_o dangerous_a humour_n of_o opinion_n which_o do_v so_o annoy_v the_o taste_n of_o silly_a soul_n that_o they_o think_v the_o heavenly_a bread_n to_o be_v poison_n and_o abhor_v the_o sweet_a food_n of_o life_n as_o woormwood_n these_o humour_n that_o i_o speak_v off_o be_v perverse_a error_n which_o seduce_v they_o from_o the_o truth_n in_o that_o article_n of_o our_o créede_v i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n for_o some_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o name_n of_o holy_a church_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o whole_a company_n of_o the_o christian_a people_n but_o to_o the_o minister_n only_o and_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n no_o not_o to_o the_o minister_n of_o every_o church_n neither_o but_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n even_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n who_o to_o have_v get_v by_o a_o certain_a custom_n to_o be_v call_v the_o church_n and_o that_o the_o church_n have_v do_v receive_v and_o ordain_v that_o which_o be_v do_v on_o receive_v and_o ordain_v by_o they_o 2._o marsilius_n patavinus_n do_v note_n in_o ago_o his_o age_n and_o it_o be_v too_o well_o know_v unto_o man_n of_o year_n other_o some_o and_o they_o of_o the_o lerned_a sort_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o church_n do_v signify_v the_o company_n of_o faithful_a man_n and_o beléever_n but_o they_o will_v have_v that_o company_n to_o be_v 2._o a_o people_n assemble_v by_o their_o own_o bishop_n and_o cleave_v to_o the_o head_n that_o be_v to_o the_o pope_n lest_o the_o papal_a state_n be_v any_o way_n impair_v they_o comprehend_v therefore_o all_o such_o within_o that_o company_n as_o do_v profess_v the_o faith_n both_o the_o good_a and_o bad_a holy_a and_o profane_a godly_a and_o hypocrite_n there_o be_v some_o also_o who_o think_v that_o by_o this_o point_n to_o believe_v the_o holy_a church_n the_o church_n authority_n be_v commend_v to_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v trust_v credit_n and_o obey_v the_o church_n which_o symb._n the_o council_n of_o trent_n it_o seem_v will_v insinuate_v though_o somewhat_o dark_o and_o distrustful_o but_o 44._o bristol_n therein_o do_v bear_v the_o bell_n away_o for_o he_o the_o more_o easy_o to_o deceive_v english_a man_n at_o least_o the_o simple_a if_o not_o all_o work_v treachery_n with_o the_o double_a signification_n of_o word_n expound_v this_o article_n ecclesiam_fw-la i_o believe_v the_o church_n as_o if_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o be_v ecclesiae_fw-la i_o trust_v the_o church_n between_o the_o which_o thing_n there_o be_v great_a difference_n and_o that_o very_o manifest_a in_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a though_o in_o our_o mother_n tongue_n not_o so_o yet_o this_o man_n be_v create_v doctor_n at_o d●way_n and_o some_o do_v account_v he_o a_o man_n of_o much_o value_n o_o wretched_a professor_n of_o the_o doway-schoole_n that_o create_v such_o a_o doctor_n but_o more_o wretched_a papist_n if_o they_o geve_v credit_n to_o such_o a_o doctor_n who_o whether_o he_o be_v sophister_n or_o sclaunderer_n more_o notable_a it_o be_v hard_a to_o say_v a_o learned_a man_n among_o the_o heathen_n if_o i_o remember_v well_o say_v that_o physician_n can_v not_o find_v a_o medicine_n against_o the_o bite_a of_o a_o sclaunderer_n but_o because_o 18.27_o the_o thing_n be_v possible_a with_o god_n which_o be_v impossible_a with_o man_n therefore_o upon_o confidence_n of_o his_o gracious_a goodness_n i_o have_v assay_v to_o make_v one_o against_o the_o bite_n of_o this_o sclaunderer_n and_o of_o the_o like_a in_o the_o four_o conclusion_n wherein_o i_o have_v declare_v set_v apart_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o goat_n mingle_v with_o sheep_n that_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n which_o we_o believe_v be_v the_o whole_a company_n of_o god_n elect_v and_o choose_v conclusion_n moreover_o lest_o the_o paint_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n shall_v make_v unskilful_a young_a man_n to_o be_v enamour_v of_o she_o when_o they_o shall_v hear_v many_o commend_v she_o as_o catholic_a apostolic_a and_o sound_v in_o faith_n to_o take_v this_o vizard_n also_o away_o from_o her_o face_n &_o wash_v away_o her_o paint_n with_o water_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o have_v add_v the_o fifth_z conclusion_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n nor_o a_o sound_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n a_o matter_n clear_v in_o truth_n but_o hard_o to_o be_v persuade_v special_o to_o lover_n for_o cupid_n be_v blind_a and_o as_o he_o say_v in_o bucolia●t_n theocritus_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o fair_a seem_v fair_a to_o he_o that_o be_v in_o love_n daphnis_n in_o the_o poet_n say_v so_o to_o polyphemus_n we_o by_o experience_n have_v find_v it_o true_a in_o bristol_n for_o he_o be_v besot_v with_o the_o love_n of_o the_o whore_n be_v not_o content_a to_o say_v that_o she_o alone_o be_v catholic_a that_o error_n be_v more_o tolerable_a at_o least_o it_o be_v a_o error_n common_a to_o he_o with_o many_o but_o 44._o he_o affirm_v far_a that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v &_o be_v call_v apostolic_a for_o this_o cause_n only_o that_o we_o may_v be_v direct_v thereby_o as_o by_o a_o mark_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n found_v by_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n the_o only_a church_n now_o leave_v of_o all_o the_o church_n apostolic_a which_o flatter_v speech_n of_o this_o lover_n symb._n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n himself_o the_o bridegroom_n of_o his_o church_n though_o dote_v on_o his_o bride_n too_o yet_o refuse_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o church_n be_v call_v apostolic_a by_o constantinopolit_fw-la the_o father_n in_o the_o creed_n to_o note_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o church_n which_o it_o have_v from_o the_o apostle_n because_o they_o deliver_v once_o the_o church_n doctrine_n and_o spread_v it_o abroad_o through_o all_o the_o world_n as_o for_o they_o 12._o that_o geve_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o must_v take_v advisement_n how_o to_o clear_v their_o boldness_n from_o attaint_n of_o sacrilege_n who_o deck_n a_o adulteress_n with_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n or_o to_o think_v the_o best_a of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o spoil_n the_o mother_n to_o deck_v the_o daughter_n and_o she_o not_o the_o best_a with_o great_a wrong_n and_o injury_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o sister_n for_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a do_v not_o appertain_v to_o this_o or_o that_o church_n but_o to_o the_o church_n universal_a continue_v through_o all_o nation_n age_n and_o province_n from_o adam_n unto_o we_o and_o to_o our_o posterity_n as_o the_o symb._n council_n of_o trent_n and_o the_o ecclesia_fw-la expounder_n of_o the_o council_n such_o be_v the_o force_n of_o truth_n do_v confess_v plain_o but_o the_o chief_a error_n that_o be_v to_o be_v abate_v be_v they_o who_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v of_o right_a
be_v it_o full_o write_v by_o s._n john_n let_v we_o hear_v himself_o speak_v 20.31_o these_o thing_n say_v he_o be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o in_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n through_o his_o name_n in_o which_o word_n the_o sum_n and_o end_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v set_v down_o by_o john_n the_o sum_n that_o we_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d the_o christ_n that_o be_v the_o sovereign_a priest_n prophet_n and_o king_n the_o saviour_n of_o man_n the_o end_n that_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v through_o he_o have_v life_n even_o that_o which_o alone_o be_v call_v life_n right_o to_o wit_n eternal_a life_n which_o thing_n be_v so_o as_o the_o evangelist_n himself_o teach_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o gospel_n be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o both_o to_o the_o way_n of_o life_n and_o to_o life_n as_o much_o then_o as_o suffice_v to_o faith_n and_o salvation_n so_o much_o be_v write_v in_o the_o gospel_n for_o if_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v have_v not_o be_v sufficient_a to_o faith_n and_o salvation_n there_o be_v 25_o mo_z thing_n which_o may_v have_v be_v write_v so_o many_o as_o the_o world_n can_v not_o have_v contain_v but_o these_o be_v omit_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n because_o the_o other_o be_v enough_o for_o his_o purpose_n for_o he_o give_v this_o reason_n why_o mo_z be_v not_o write_v these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v and_o in_o believe_v may_v have_v life_n there_o be_v contain_v therefore_o in_o s._n johns_n gospel_n so_o much_o as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o faith_n and_o salvation_n then_o if_o s._n johns_n gospel_n alone_o have_v sufficient_a how_o plentiful_o have_v christ_n provide_v for_o his_o church_n as_o a_o most_o bountiful_a lord_n for_o his_o household_n to_o which_o he_o have_v give_v so_o many_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n witness_n and_o expounder_n of_o the_o same_o doctrine_n wherefore_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o only_o teach_v the_o church_n but_o also_o ample_o and_o plentiful_o teach_v it_o all_o thing_n behooveful_a to_o salvation_n for_o although_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v single_a and_o the_o same_o wherewith_o as_o with_o meat_n the_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v feed_v to_o life_n eternal_a yet_o as_o the_o age_n of_o the_o servant_n differ_v and_o in_o age_n different_a their_o case_n differ_v too_o so_o be_v it_o meet_v there_o shall_v be_v sundry_a sort_n and_o way_n to_o divide_v that_o meat_n and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o season_v it_o for_o each_o one_o his_o part_n as_o it_o may_v best_o agree_v with_o he_o whereof_o that_o we_o may_v have_v a_o true_a &_o lively_a pattern_n set_v forth_o by_o christ_n own_o spirit_n in_o the_o word_n of_o life_n for_o the_o feed_n of_o the_o faithful_a therefore_o he_o give_v sundry_a workman_n so_o to_o term_v they_o and_o writer_n of_o his_o faith_n that_o although_o they_o deliver_v all_o the_o same_o food_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o dress_v it_o all_o in_o one_o sort_n and_o so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o in_o those_o writer_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n both_o the_o unity_n of_o doctrine_n in_o the_o diversity_n of_o deliver_v yield_v a_o sweet_a taste_n in_o the_o spiritual_a mouth_n of_o the_o godly_a mind_n and_o the_o manifold_a use_n minister_v wholesome_a nourishment_n to_o every_o man_n stomach_n &_o the_o evident_a plainness_n in_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n make_v that_o even_o they_o who_o be_v of_o deinty_a mouth_n can_v not_o refuse_v it_o for_o the_o toughness_n and_o the_o hide_a wisdom_n in_o the_o secret_n of_o scripture_n both_o tri_v the_o strong_a and_o satisfi_v they_o who_o be_v sharp_a set_v and_o to_o say_v that_o in_o a_o word_n which_o no_o word_n can_v express_v enough_o the_o infinite_a treasure_n bring_v infinite_a fruit_n to_o the_o faithful_a to_o procure_v they_o a_o blessedness_n that_o be_v exceed_o great_a and_o infinite_a wherefore_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o clear_a and_o so_o sure_a that_o those_o secretary_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n join_v together_o do_v open_a to_o the_o church_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n all_o thing_n behooveful_a to_o salvation_n that_o he_o who_o know_v it_o not_o may_v be_v just_o count_v ignorant_a he_o who_o acknowledge_v it_o not_o lewd_a he_o who_o dissemble_v it_o unthankful_a he_o who_o deni_v it_o more_o than_o wicked_a for_o what_o can_v there_o be_v in_o cléerenesse_n more_o evident_a or_o in_o poise_n more_o weighty_a or_o in_o strength_n more_o sound_a or_o in_o truth_n more_o certain_a than_o that_o general_a principle_n which_o s._n paul_n deliver_v not_o as_o moses_n of_o the_o law_n not_o as_o john_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o of_o the_o whole_a scripture_n and_o holy_a write_v to_o timothee_n 3.16_o the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v give_v by_o inspiration_n of_o god_n and_o be_v profitable_a to_o teach_v to_o improve_v to_o correct_v to_o instruct_v in_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v furnish_v thorough_o furnish_v to_o every_o good_a work_n thus_o if_o you_o demand_v of_o what_o authority_n scripture_n be_v it_o come_v from_o god_n by_o inspiration_n if_o you_o regard_v what_o use_v it_o have_v it_o teach_v improve_v correct_v instruct_v if_o you_o will_v see_v to_o what_o end_n it_o be_v that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v furnish_v our_o duty_n in_o christ_n jesus_n be_v ●_o faith_n work_v by_o love_n faith_n embrace_v sound_a doctrine_n love_n require_v a_o godly_a life_n soundness_n of_o doctrine_n be_v hold_v if_o true_a thing_n be_v teach_v and_o false_a refute_v godliness_n of_o life_n be_v keep_v if_o we_o fly_v from_o evil_a and_o follow_v good_a but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v the_o truth_n improve_v error_n correct_v iniquity_n instruct_v to_o righteousness_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o apostle_n word_n therefore_o it_o set_v forth_o a_o man_n whole_a duty_n in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o be_v as_o i_o suppose_v so_o much_o as_o suffice_v to_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v not_o only_o profitable_a to_o these_o thing_n as_o some_o do_v mince_v the_o matter_n but_o sufficient_a too_o in_o so_o much_o that_o it_o be_v 3.15_o able_a to_o make_v a_o man_n wise_a to_o salvation_n through_o faith_n and_o to_o furnish_v he_o yea_o to_o furnish_v what_o manner_n of_o man_n the_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o lord_n interpreter_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n the_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n the_o pastor_n of_o the_o flock_n even_o 1●_n timothee_n himself_o much_o more_o the_o flock_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o who_o so_o great_a furniture_n of_o wisdom_n be_v not_o necessary_a howbeit_o the_o apostle_n neither_o so_o content_v with_o say_v that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v furnish_v add_v to_o beat_v the_o absolute_a perfection_n of_o the_o scripture_n into_o our_o mind_n and_o memory_n with_o as_o many_o reason_n as_o he_o use_v word_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v 〈◊〉_d furnish_v 〈◊〉_d thorough_o furnish_v to_o every_o good_a work_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o that_o can_v be_v wish_v for_o either_o to_o soundness_n and_o sincerity_n of_o faith_n or_o to_o integrity_n and_o godliness_n of_o life_n that_o be_v to_o man_n perfection_n and_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n which_o the_o scripture_n give_v by_o inspiration_n of_o god_n do_v not_o teach_v the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o christ._n it_o be_v the_o judgement_n therefore_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sentence_n i_o defend_v as_o i_o be_o bind_v by_o duty_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v the_o church_n all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n here_o if_o some_o perhaps_o desire_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n though_o to_o what_o purpose_n since_o you_o have_v hear_v the_o father_n of_o father_n notwithstanding_o if_o any_o will_v hear_v the_o scholar_n judgement_n when_o he_o have_v hear_v the_o master_n he_o shall_v hear_v the_o judgement_n not_o of_o this_o or_o that_o man_n of_o who_o he_o may_v doubt_v but_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o of_o all_o the_o saint_n for_o they_o with_o one_o agreement_n and_o general_a consent_n have_v term_v the_o book_n of_o scripture_n canonical_a of_o the_o word_n canon_n which_o signify_v a_o rule_n because_o they_o contain_v a_o worthy_a rule_n and_o squire_n of_o religion_n faith_n and_o godliness_n according_a whereunto_o the_o building_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n must_v be_v fit_v which_o opinion_n touch_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n allow_v by_o 3._o andradius_fw-la himself_n the_o chief_a patron_n of_o the_o popish_a faith_n have_v be_v
so_o well_o like_v of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n that_o 9_o austin_n say_v that_o all_o thing_n concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n be_v contain_v in_o those_o i_o say_v not_o which_o be_v but_o which_o be_v plain_a in_o scripture_n 3._o chrysostome_n avouch_v in_o the_o like_a manner_n that_o every_o thing_n be_v clear_a and_o evident_a by_o the_o scripture_n and_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v necessary_a they_o be_v manifest_a hermogen_n tertullian_n pronounce_v that_o himself_o honour_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o denounce_v a_o woe_n to_o hermogenes_n the_o heretic_n if_o he_o take_v aught_o from_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v or_o add_v to_o they_o heluidium_n jerom_n in_o the_o controversy_n which_o he_o have_v with_o heluidius_fw-la do_v turn_v the_o reason_n in_o and_o out_o we_o believe_v it_o because_o we_o read_v it_o we_o believe_v it_o not_o because_o we_o read_v it_o not_o 68_o cyrill_n observe_v that_o such_o of_o the_o thing_n do_v by_o christ_n be_v write_v as_o the_o writer_n think_v to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o manner_n and_o doctrine_n fid._n basil_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a revolt_n from_o the_o faith_n either_o to_o disallow_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v or_o to_o bring_v in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o write_v to_o be_v short_a all_o the_o father_n unless_o it_o be_v when_o some_o human_a infirmity_n overtake_v they_o agree_v with_o one_o mind_n and_o say_v with_o one_o voice_n that_o all_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v will_v we_o to_o believe_v and_o do_v be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o as_o touch_v that_o some_o of_o they_o sometime_o as_o 29._o basil_n and_o 61._o epiphanius_n assay_v all_o sort_n of_o help_n against_o heretic_n will_v have_v certain_a thing_n to_o be_v contain_v in_o tradition_n whereto_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o scripture_n itself_o there_o must_v no_o less_o credit_n be_v give_v then_o to_o scripture_n i_o take_v not_o upon_o i_o to_o control_v they_o but_o let_v the_o church_n judge_v whether_o they_o consider_v with_o advice_n enough_o those_o say_n of_o s._n paul_n by_o which_o they_o be_v induce_v perhaps_o to_o this_o opinion_n at_o least_o they_o seek_v to_o prove_v it_o for_o epiphanius_n ground_v upon_o these_o word_n of_o his_o to_o the_o corinthian_n 11.2_o as_o i_o deliver_v to_o you_o and_o i_o have_v deliver_v so_o in_o the_o church_n and_o 15.1_o if_o you_o keep_v it_o except_o you_o have_v believe_v in_o vain_a and_o basil_n gather_v it_o to_o be_v apostolic_a doctrine_n that_o we_o must_v hold_v fast_o unwriten_a tradition_n by_o his_o word_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o 2.15_o hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v be_v teach_v either_o by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n now_o if_o s._n paul_n mean_v in_o both_o these_o place_n by_o deliver_v and_o tradition_n his_o doctrine_n deliver_v to_o they_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n yet_o comprise_v in_o scripture_n too_o then_o must_v it_o be_v grant_v that_o they_o be_v deceive_v who_o think_v that_o unwriten_a tradition_n be_v approve_v by_o s._n paul_n tradition_n but_o the_o former_a point_n be_v true_a that_o he_o mean_v so_o therefore_o the_o late_a also_o be_v true_a which_o follow_v of_o it_o for_o he_o do_v expound_v it_o himself_o to_o the_o corinthian_n consider_v that_o epistle_n he_o write_v the_o sum_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v deliver_v and_o what_o 2d_o he_o deliver_v that_o he_o receive_v he_o say_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o 22.19_o that_o which_o he_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n be_v write_v and_o in_o plain_a term_n 15.3_o he_o witness_v himself_o to_o have_v deliver_v that_o unto_o they_o which_o he_o have_v receive_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n to_o weet_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o our_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o he_o be_v bury_v and_o that_o he_o rise_v the_o three_o day_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n as_o for_o the_o thessalonian_o what_o the_o thing_n be_v which_o he_o deliver_v unto_o they_o by_o word_n it_o be_v show_v in_o the_o 17.2_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n where_o we_o read_v that_o paul_n be_v come_v to_o thessalonica_n teach_v the_o jew_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o it_o behoove_v christ_n to_o suffer_v and_o to_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o this_o jesus_n who_o say_v he_o i_o preach_v to_o you_o be_v the_o christ._n in_o which_o word_n it_o be_v open_v both_o what_o paul_n deliver_v to_o the_o thessalonian_o by_o word_n and_o from_o whence_o from_o whence_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n what_o that_o it_o behoove_v christ_n to_o suffer_v and_o rise_v again_o and_o that_o jesus_n be_v 20.31_o the_o christ._n the_o tradition_n therefore_o which_o paul_n do_v exhort_v the_o thessalonian_o to_o hold_v be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o 2._o ambrose_n call_v it_o very_o well_o which_o the_o reason_n also_o do_v prove_v that_o ambrose_n note_v that_o paul_n do_v there_o gather_v 14._o god_n have_v raise_v you_o to_o salvation_n by_o our_o gospel_n 15._o therefore_o stand_v you_o fast_o and_o hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v be_v teach_v either_o by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v see_v therefore_o that_o you_o stand_v steadfast_a in_o the_o gospel_n which_o i_o as_o well_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n as_o by_o writing_n have_v deliver_v to_o you_o thus_o s._n paul_n tradition_n be_v the_o gospel_n deliver_v and_o the_o gospel_n i_o hope_v be_v write_v therefore_o s._n paul_n tradition_n be_v write_v but_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o tradition_n which_o s._n paul_n have_v teach_v they_o by_o word_n &_o by_o epistle_n the_o scripture_n than_o inform_v the_o church_n of_o so_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n wherefore_o avaunt_o heretic_n out_o of_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n you_o valentinian_o marcionite_n and_o gnostike_n who_o as_o 2._o irenaeus_n report_v do_v deny_v that_o the_o truth_n may_v be_v learn_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o they_o who_o know_v not_o tradition_n avaunt_o jew_n by_o who_o the_o cabala_n of_o the_o rabbin_n avaunt_o montanist_n by_o who_o the_o new_a comforter_n avaunt_o anabaptist_n by_o who_o revelation_n avaunt_o you_o 1_o trent-councell-fathers_n and_n you_o papists_n by_o who_o tradition_n beside_o scripture_n be_v false_o repute_v to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n our_o salvation_n be_v christ_n the_o way_n to_o salvation_n faith_n the_o guide_n of_o the_o way_n scripture_n whereof_o the_o light_n and_o lantern_n direct_v our_o step_n the_o food_n nourish_v our_o soul_n the_o preservative_n keep_v we_o from_o disease_n the_o sword_n kill_v our_o enemy_n the_o plaster_n heal_v our_o wound_n in_o a_o word_n the_o safe_a conduit_n do_v bring_v we_o unto_o eternal_a life_n conclusion_n the_o second_o conclusion_n which_o i_o be_o next_o to_o treat_v of_o do_v undertake_v to_o show_v that_o the_o militant_a church_n may_v err_v both_o in_o manner_n and_o in_o doctrine_n in_o manner_n against_o the_o puritan_n 33._o who_o chaleng_v to_o themselves_o a_o singular_a kind_n of_o holiness_n deny_v repentance_n to_o such_o as_o have_v fall_v in_o doctrine_n against_o the_o papist_n 〈…〉_o who_o for_o a_o defence_n and_o shield_n of_o their_o error_n hold_v forth_o this_o bug_n to_o fright_v we_o out_o of_o our_o wit_n the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v here_o that_o the_o truth_n may_v be_v the_o better_o open_v the_o name_n of_o church_n must_v be_v distinguish_v for_o as_o thrasylaus_n a_o frantic_a man_n among_o the_o greek_n 12._o whensoever_o he_o see_v any_o ship_n arrive_v into_o the_o haven_n at_o athens_n think_v they_o all_o his_o own_o and_o take_v a_o inventory_n of_o their_o ware_n and_o meet_v they_o with_o great_a joy_n after_o the_o like_a manner_n certain_a frantic_a romanist_n demand_n wheresoever_o they_o see_v the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o take_v it_o to_o be_v they_o and_o book_n the_o treasure_n of_o it_o and_o boast_v thereof_o as_o of_o their_o own_o cry_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o but_o to_o remove_v these_o frantic_a man_n out_o of_o the_o haven_n and_o deliver_v the_o merchant_n each_o their_o own_o ship_n &_o set_v the_o church_n itself_o in_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n the_o name_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d church_n in_o greek_a the_o native_a language_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n come_v from_o a_o verb_n which_o signifi_v to_o call_v out_o thereby_o to_o note_v a_o company_n call_v out_o as_o you_o will_v say_v so_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v token_v a_o company_n call_v out_o from_o among_o the_o multitude_n of_o other_o man_n to_o life_n everlasting_a through_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n but_o they_o who_o be_v
and_o our_o church_n do_v hold_v the_o three_o council_n of_o 47._o carthage_n which_o therein_o the_o council_n of_o 4._o trent_n subscribe_v to_o do_v add_v the_o book_n of_o maccabe_n &_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apocrypha_n to_o the_o old_a canon_n the_o 6._o council_n of_o nice_a appoint_a bound_n and_o limit_n as_o well_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n jurisdiction_n as_o for_o other_o bishop_n the_o council_n of_o tert_n lateran_n give_v the_o soveraintie_n of_o ordinary_a power_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o other_o church_n the_o council_n of_o 5._o constance_n decree_v that_o the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o make_v the_o papal_a power_n subject_n to_o general_a counsel_n which_o thing_n do_v so_o high_o displease_v the_o council_n of_o florence_n that_o indict_v it_o undermine_v the_o council_n of_o basill_n and_o guileful_o surprise_v it_o for_o put_v that_o in_o ●re_n against_o pope_n eugenius_n upon_o the_o which_o point_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v that_o one_o side_n of_o these_o general_a counsel_n do_v err_v unless_o we_o will_v say_v that_o thing_n which_o be_v contrary_a may_v be_v true_a both_o wherefore_o to_o make_v a_o end_n since_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o most_o clear_a proof_n that_o both_o the_o choose_a and_o the_o call_v both_o the_o flock_n and_o the_o pastor_n both_o in_o several_a by_o themselves_o and_o assemble_v together_o in_o general_a counsel_n may_v err_v i_o be_o to_o conclude_v with_o the_o good_a like_n i_o hope_v of_o such_o as_o love_v the_o truth_n that_o the_o militant_a church_n may_v err_v in_o manner_n and_o doctrine_n in_o the_o one_o point_n whereof_o concern_v manner_n i_o defend_v ourselves_o against_o the_o malicious_a slander_n of_o the_o 8._o papist_n who_o charge_v the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o the_o heresy_n of_o puritan_n impudent_o and_o false_o in_o the_o other_o concern_v doctrine_n i_o do_v not_o touch_v the_o wall_n of_o babylon_n with_o a_o light_a finger_n but_o raze_v from_o the_o very_a ground_n the_o whole_a mount_n of_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n conclusion_n who_o intolerable_a presumption_n be_v reprove_v by_o the_o three_o conclusion_n too_o wherein_o it_o rest_v to_o be_v show_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v of_o great_a credit_n &_o authority_n then_o the_o church_n and_o although_o this_o be_v so_o manifest_o true_a that_o to_o have_v propose_v it_o only_o be_v to_o have_v prove_v it_o yet_o give_v i_o leave_v i_o pray_v to_o prove_v it_o brief_o with_o one_o reason_n i_o will_v not_o trouble_v you_o with_o many_o all_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n some_o word_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o word_n of_o error_n but_o he_o that_o tell_v the_o truth_n always_o be_v more_o to_o be_v credit_v than_o he_o that_o lie_v sometime_o therefore_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v credit_v more_o then_o be_v the_o church_n that_o all_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v out_o of_o controversy_n for_o 3.16_o the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v inspire_v of_o god_n and_o 1.2_o god_n can_v neither_o deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v that_o some_o word_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o word_n of_o error_n if_o any_o be_v not_o persuade_v perhaps_o by_o the_o reason_n which_o i_o have_v bring_v already_o let_v he_o hear_v the_o sharpese_n and_o most_o earnest_a patron_n of_o the_o church_n confess_v it_o 1._o andrad●us_fw-la payva_fw-la a_o doctor_n of_o portugal_n the_o best_a learned_a man_n in_o my_o opinion_n of_o all_o the_o papist_n reherse_v certain_a point_n wherein_o counsel_n also_o may_v err_v even_o general_a counsel_n in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o say_v that_o the_o very_a general_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n one_o of_o those_o four_o first_o which_v 10._o gregory_n profess_v himself_o to_o receive_v as_o the_o four_o book_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n yet_o andradius_fw-la say_v that_o this_o council_n err_v in_o that_o it_o do_v ratione_fw-la rash_o and_o without_o reason_n these_o be_v his_o own_o word_n ordain_v that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v be_v above_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n and_o anti●●he_n neither_o do_v he_o only_o say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n err_v and_o contrary_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o nicen_n cuncell_n but_o he_o add_v also_o a_o reason_n why_o counsel_n may_v err_v in_o such_o case_n to_o weet_v because_o they_o follow_v spiritus_fw-la not_o the_o secret_a motion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o inanem_fw-la idle_a blast_n of_o vain_a report_n and_o sallace_n man_n opinion_n which_o deceive_v oft_o a_o council_n then_o may_v follow_v some_o time_n the_o deceitful_a opinion_n of_o man_n and_o not_o the_o secret_a motion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n let_v the_o counsel_n than_o give_v place_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n whereof_o no_o part_n be_v utter_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n but_o all_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o if_o some_o caviller_n to_o shift_v of_o this_o reason_n shall_v say_v that_o we_o must_v not_o account_v of_o that_o error_n as_o though_o it_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o general_a council_n because_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o allow_v it_o and_o approve_v it_o i_o will_v request_v he_o first_o of_o all_o to_o weigh_v that_o a_o general_a council_n and_o assembly_n of_o bishop_n must_v needs_o be_v distinguish_v from_o this_o and_o that_o particular_a bishop_n so_o that_o what_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o ordein_v that_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o council_n next_o to_o consider_v that_o the_o name_n of_o church_n may_v be_v give_v to_o a_o assemblis_n of_o bishop_n and_o a_o council_n but_o it_o can_v not_o be_v give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n last_o to_o remember_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n honorius_n the_o first_o be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n by_o 13._o the_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n allow_v and_o approve_v by_o agatho_n bishop_n of_o rome_n wherefore_o take_v the_o name_n of_o church_n in_o what_o sense_n soever_o you_o listen_v be_v it_o for_o the_o company_n either_o of_o god_n choose_v or_o of_o the_o call_v too_o or_o of_o the_o guide_n and_o pastor_n or_o be_v it_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o own_o person_n though_o to_o take_v it_o so_o it_o seem_v very_o absurd_a the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n himself_o if_o he_o be_v to_o be_v my_o judge_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o deny_v unless_o his_o forehead_n be_v of_o adamant_n but_o that_o some_o of_o the_o church_n word_n be_v word_n of_o error_n now_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o romanistes_n themselves_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v both_o that_o the_o church_n say_v some_o thing_n which_o be_v erroneous_a and_o that_o the_o scripture_n say_v nothing_o but_o clear_a truth_n shall_v there_o yet_o be_v find_v any_o man_n either_o so_o blockish_o unskilful_a or_o so_o froward_o past_o shame_n as_o that_o he_o dare_v affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v of_o great_a credit_n and_o authority_n than_o the_o holy_a scripture_n ●_o pighius_fw-la have_v do_v it_o in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o holy_a government_n of_o the_o church_n where_o though_o he_o in_o 〈◊〉_d ●●llify_v with_o gallant_a salve_n his_o curse_a speech_n yet_o to_o build_v the_o tower_n of_o his_o church_n and_o antichrist_n with_o the_o ruin_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n first_o he_o say_v touch_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n subcisent_fw-fr not_o that_o they_o shall_v rule_v our_o faith_n and_o religion_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v rule_v rather_o and_o then_o he_o conclude_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o not_o inferior_a not_o only_o equal_a nay_o it_o be_v superior_a also_o after_o a_o sort_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n 10._o pliny_n report_v that_o there_o be_v at_o rome_n a_o certain_a dial_n set_v in_o the_o field_n of_o flora_n to_o note_v the_o shadow_n of_o the_o sun_n the_o note_n and_o mark_n of_o which_o dial_n have_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o sun_n for_o the_o space_n of_o thirty_o year_n and_o the_o cause_n thereof_o be_v this_o as_o pliny_n say_v that_o either_o the_o course_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v disorder_v and_o change_v by_o some_o mean_n of_o heaven_n or_o else_o the_o whole_a earth_n be_v slip_v away_o from_o her_o centre_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n seem_v to_o be_v very_o like_o this_o dial_n in_o the_o field_n of_o flora._n for_o she_o be_v place_v in_o the_o roman_a territory_n to_o show_v the_o shadow_n of_o the_o sun_n even_o of_o 4.2_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n that_o be_v of_o christ_n but_o her_o note_n and_o mark_n have_v not_o agree_v with_o christ_n these_o many_o year_n together_o not_o that_o
or_o the_o have_v of_o it_o corrupt_v in_o the_o which_o respect_n christ_n who_o give_v charge_n that_o 21.16_o his_o sheep_n be_v feed_v charge_v that_o 28.20_o they_o be_v teach_v to_o observe_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o command_v his_o apostle_n and_o peter_n have_v show_v that_o 1.23_o the_o faithful_a be_v beget_v a_o new_a by_o god_n word_n exhort_v they_o to_o 2.2_o desire_v the_o milk_n of_o the_o word_n the_o sincere_a milk_n &_o 〈◊〉_d not_o corrupt_v with_o any_o trumpery_n that_o they_o may_v grow_v thereby_o and_o they_o who_o be_v warn_v ●_o to_o hear_v the_o pharise_n sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n be_v warn_v 16.6_o to_o beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharise_n wherefore_o a_o church_n that_o will_v be_v whole_a and_o sound_a must_v neither_o be_v famish_v with_o want_n of_o god_n word_n nor_o have_v it_o corrupt_v but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v bring_v in_o both_o corruption_n and_o want_v of_o the_o word_n nor_o only_o bring_v they_o in_o but_o also_o maintain_v they_o obstinate_o as_o wholesome_a the_o church_n of_o rome_n therefore_o be_v not_o whole_a and_o sound_a nay_o she_o seem_v rather_o to_o be_v mad_a &_o frantic_a for_o she_o bring_v in_o corruption_n of_o the_o word_n to_o begin_v with_o that_o by_o mingle_v and_o adulterate_v the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o man_n word_n not_o one_o way_n but_o sundry_a first_o in_o that_o she_o give_v 4._o authority_n canonical_a that_o be_v divine_a authority_n to_o the_o book_n call_v apocrypha_n which_o be_v humane_a against_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v gainsay_v flat_o by_o 2.1_o certain_a point_n in_o the_o apocrypha_n against_o the_o clear_a evidence_n of_o thing_n therein_o record_v apocrypha_fw-la which_o by_o their_o repugnancy_n one_o unto_o another_o do_v show_v that_o man_n be_v autour_n of_o they_o against_o the_o consent_n &_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o 3._o old_a church_n whole_o and_o of_o the_o sol●m_n best_a part_n of_o the_o new_a second_o in_o that_o she_o receyve_v 4._o tradition_n of_o man_n with_o equal_a reverence_n and_o religious_a affection_n as_o she_o do_v the_o scripture_n as_o though_o conclusion_n the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o most_o exact_a &_o perfect_a squire_n of_o god_n will_n and_o rule_v of_o righteousness_n and_o wisdom_n suffice_v not_o for_o faith_n and_o manner_n or_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n can_v gainsay_v himself_o which_o must_v be_v import_v by_o this_o of_o tradition_n some_o whereof_o do_o fight_v one_o against_o another_o some_o against_o the_o scripture_n in_o soothe_v this_o point_n be_v handle_v with_o a_o dutiful_a care_n and_o regard_n of_o scripture_n which_o have_v no_o great_a reverence_n at_o rome_n than_o tradition_n and_o that_o all_o tradition_n be_v not_o observe_v there_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o 7●_n the_o father_n who_o 2._o themselves_o allege_v three_o in_o that_o she_o will_v 4._o the_o latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n common_o call_v s._n jeroms_n to_o be_v receive_v throughout_o as_o sacred_a and_o canonical_a and_o not_o to_o be_v refuse_v on_o any_o pretence_n whereas_o yet_o to_o let_v go_v the_o judgement_n of_o s._n ●estam_fw-la jerom_n &_o other_o 43._o ancient_a father_n the_o papist_n themselves_o such_o as_o be_v most_o expert_a in_o the_o tongue_n among_o they_o acknowledge_v that_o translation_n to_o have_v miss_v sometime_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o not_o the_o word_n only_o even_o sept_fw-fr pagninus_n namely_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n pandect_a budaeus_fw-la in_o the_o new_a 4._o andradius_fw-la and_o praefat_fw-la arias_n montanus_n in_o they_o both_o four_o in_o that_o 4._o about_o expound_v of_o the_o scripture_n she_o condemn_v all_o sense_n and_o meaning_n thereof_o which_o be_v against_o the_o sense_n that_o herself_o hold_v or_o against_o the_o father_n consent_v all_o in_o one_o whereby_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v refuse_v often_o but_o meaning_n and_o sense_n devise_v by_o man_n though_o cross_v one_o a_o other_o yet_o if_o they_o be_v currant_n for_o the_o time_n and_o practise_v as_o a_o 2._o cardinal_n say_v shall_v go_v for_o authentical_a the_o baggage_n which_o the_o school_n man_n have_v s●iled_v divinity_n with_o out_o of_o the_o philosopher_n puddle_n and_o their_o own_o shall_v be_v account_v holy_a the_o thing_n which_o some_o father_n have_v handle_v more_o sound_o shall_v be_v set_v aside_o as_o humane_a invention_n though_o they_o agree_v with_o god_n word_n but_o other_o in_o the_o which_o they_o be_v overséene_a through_o weakness_n of_o natural_a affection_n or_o reason_n shall_v be_v approve_v as_o god_n word_n though_o they_o proceed_v from_o man_n fancy_n five_o in_o that_o she_o coople_v 10._o with_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n the_o commandment_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o man_n and_o that_o be_v more_o she_o coople_v therewith_o these_o commandment_n not_o as_o thing_n indifferent_a but_o as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n so_o what_o soever_o filth_n devotion_n as_o it_o be_v name_v indeed_o superstition_n have_v bring_v or_o shall_v bring_v in_o that_o must_v be_v deem_v to_o be_v pure_a religion_n and_o in_o vain_a shall_v the_o lord_n be_v worship_v of_o we_o 15.9_o as_o of_o the_o jew_n in_o old_a time_n with_o the_o commandment_n of_o man_n and_o good_a intentes_fw-la as_o they_o call_v they_o 15.23_o which_o be_v abominable_a to_o god_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o obedience_n &_o voluntary_a religion_n condemn_v by_o 2.23_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v take_v up_o as_o a_o most_o holy_a service_n of_o the_o lord_n last_o of_o all_o in_o that_o she_o appoint_v 25._o image_n to_o be_v have_v in_o church_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o people_n as_o book_n so_o 9_o one_o suppose_v which_o read_v idiote_n may_v read_v in_o o_o miserable_a idiote_n the_o instruct_n of_o who_o be_v commit_v to_o a_o stock_n 10.8_o which_o instruct_v to_o vanity_n who_o teacher_n be_v a_o image_n that_o be_v 2.18_o a_o teacher_n of_o lie_n if_o we_o believe_v the_o prophet_n and_o be_v it_o any_o marvel_n if_o they_o be_v naughty_a scholar_n who_o master_n be_v dumb_a idol_n the_o doctor_n of_o error_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n therefore_o have_v bring_v in_o such_o corruption_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n what_o by_o the_o apocrypha_n what_o by_o tradition_n what_o by_o fault_n of_o the_o translation_n what_o by_o the_o sense_n of_o she_o hold_v what_o by_o commandment_n of_o the_o church_n what_o by_o the_o teacher_n of_o idiote_n that_o she_o seem_v to_o have_v mingle_v the_o sustenance_n of_o life_n not_o with_o filth_n but_o with_o poison_n and_o the_o wine_n of_o god_n not_o with_o water_n but_o with_o venoome_n and_o the_o bread_n of_o christ_n not_o with_o leaven_n but_o with_o ratsbane_n or_o rather_o if_o i_o may_v speak_v so_o mens-bane_n as_o for_o want_v of_o god_n word_n which_o be_v the_o other_o cause_n of_o sickness_n how_o wretched_o she_o have_v pine_v her_o child_n therewith_o our_o ancestor_n feel_v by_o long_a experience_n and_o age_a man_n may_v remember_v and_o history_n of_o the_o church_n do_v witness_n and_o they_o who_o be_v under_o the_o popish_a yoke_n know_v for_o though_o she_o permit_v sometime_o in_o some_o place_n perhaps_o a_o small_a parcel_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o i_o may_v call_v that_o god_n word_n which_o savour_v more_o of_o man_n devise_n then_o of_o god_n to_o be_v touch_v in_o the_o presence_n and_o assembly_n of_o the_o people_n by_o common_a crier_n preacher_n such_o as_o they_o be_v yet_o she_o have_v not_o only_o not_o permit_v to_o christian_n but_o also_o have_v hinder_v with_o no_o less_o impiety_n than_o inhumanity_n yea_o and_o hinder_v still_o that_o abundance_n and_o plenty_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v as_o it_o be_v write_v 3.16_o let_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n dwell_v in_o you_o plenteous_o with_o all_o wisdom_n for_o whereas_o this_o plenty_n be_v get_v &_o obtain_v by_o two_o special_a mean_n to_o weet_v by_o hear_v &_o by_o read_v the_o one_o command_v all_o in_o church-assembly_n public_o the_o other_o allow_v private_o to_o every_o man_n at_o home_n both_o use_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o 1.3_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o 17.11_o holy_a company_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o father_n holy_a church_n our_o romanist_n pretend_v that_o horrible_a confusion_n will_v ensue_v thereof_o and_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v like_a to_o babylon_n not_o to_o jerusalem_n as_o cardinal_n legend_n hosius_n say_v if_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v read_v in_o mother_n tongue_n do_v keep_v they_o seal_v up_o in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n and_o sound_v they_o out_o so_o in_o their_o church-assembly_n that_o
fruit_n and_o other_o policy_n of_o the_o pope_n 26.15_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o and_o his_o courtly_a train_n may_v be_v more_o rich_a in_o wealth_n ●_o more_o gallant_n in_o bravery_n more_o high_a in_o princely_a state_n minist_n have_v not_o all_o christendom_n bear_v to_o their_o grief_n the_o yoke_n of_o the_o ambition_n and_o covetousness_n of_o rome_n which_o cry_v out_o like_o judas_n what_o will_v you_o geve_v i_o there_o be_v extant_a in_o print_n the_o defence_n and_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n show_v fresh_a mark_n of_o the_o roman_a tyranny_n wherewith_o our_o country_n have_v be_v sear_v as_o with_o a_o hot_a burn_a iron_n there_o be_v extant_a a_o supplication_n of_o the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n wherein_o the_o frenchman_n request_v their_o king_n to_o ease_v they_o of_o the_o curse_a extortion_n injury_n and_o guile_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v extant_a germanic_a the_o hundred_o greevance_n of_o germany_n who_o complaint_n write_v as_o it_o be_v with_o their_o own_o blood_n do_v show_v with_o what_o outrage_n the_o see_v of_o rome_n have_v throw_v down_o oppress_v bruise_a and_o spoil_v that_o most_o noble_a nation_n there_o be_v extant_a papam_fw-la infinite_a book_n of_o lamentation_n write_v by_o learned_a man_n of_o all_o coast_n &_o quarter_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o papacy_n confess_v all_o with_o one_o consent_n that_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n be_v great_o decay_v the_o disciplinam_fw-la papist_n themselves_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v not_o confess_v it_o only_o but_o also_o witness_v it_o by_o public_a writing_n to_o the_o world_n there_o be_v gather_v together_o a_o council_n at_o constance_n about_o a_o eight_o score_n year_n since_o 5._o that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v reform_v both_o in_o the_o head_n and_o in_o the_o member_n the_o matter_n not_o be_v accomplish_v at_o constance_n be_v 3_o enterprise_v again_o at_o basill_n but_o eugenius_n the_o four_o who_o be_v pope_n then_o can_v not_o abide_v the_o reformation_n and_o therefore_o quart_n revoke_v the_o council_n of_o basill_n by_o message_n and_o bull_n which_o since_o they_o disobey_v he_o break_v it_o up_o by_o force_n of_o arm_n and_o whereas_o there_o be_v make_v a_o sanctio_fw-la act_n by_o the_o french_a king_n with_o his_o state_n that_o sundry_a decree_n and_o ordinance_n of_o that_o council_n shall_v be_v of_o force_n in_o france_n decim_fw-la the_o pope_n who_o succéede_v eugenius_n never_o rest_v till_o they_o have_v get_v that_o act_n repeal_v the_o last_o hope_n remain_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o true_o many_o thing_n be_v decree_v 3._o there_o for_o point_n of_o reformation_n wise_o and_o worthy_o but_o three_o spot_n of_o mischief_n touch_v by_o disciplina_fw-la heruetus_n a_o papist_n of_o so_o much_o the_o great_a weight_n his_o testimony_n be_v against_o papist_n do_v renew_v the_o old_a corruption_n one_o that_o the_o decree_n although_o they_o be_v make_v be_v not_o observe_v yet_o another_o that_o although_o they_o shall_v be_v observe_v yet_o they_o be_v not_o such_o as_o may_v restore_v full_o the_o ancient_a good_a order_n the_o last_o that_o although_o they_o restore_v the_o ancient_a order_n yet_o do_v they_o little_a good_a because_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o law_n himself_o and_o he_o dispense_v with_o who_o he_o listen_v so_o that_o medicine_n heal_v not_o the_o wound_n but_o make_v they_o worse_a as_o long_o as_o the_o pope_n may_v repeal_v alter_v pervert_v and_o break_v through_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n with_o his_o dispensation_n and_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n that_o detestable_a clause_n ult._n annex_v to_o decree_n of_o reformation_n in_o the_o council_n apostolicae_fw-la provide_v always_o that_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v safe_a and_o no_o way_n prejudice_v do_v show_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v not_o only_o sick_a but_o also_o past_a hope_n of_o recover_v her_o health_n for_o as_o in_o man_n body_n the_o great_a the_o spleen_n wax_v the_o lesser_a wax_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o member_n they_o say_v so_o the_o more_o safe_a the_o pope_n authority_n be_v the_o less_o safe_a will_v all_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v 4._o the_o court_n of_o rome_n with_o poison_n strong_a infect_v to_o destroy_v with_o the_o contagion_n of_o her_o sore_n do_v country_n all_o annoy_n wherefore_o to_o knit_v up_o the_o sum_n of_o my_o reason_n see_v it_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o very_a evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o that_o nether_a the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v teach_v pure_o nor_o the_o sacrament_n right_o minister_v nor_o prayer_n make_v religious_o nor_o discipline_n due_o practise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o the_o former_a reason_n of_o cause_n seem_v too_o weak_a yet_o be_v it_o full_o prove_v i_o hope_v by_o the_o effect_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v no_o sound_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n how_o much_o more_o absurd_a be_v it_o to_o count_v she_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n therefore_o be_v neither_o the_o catholic_a nor_o a_o sound_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o have_v stay_v long_o in_o open_v this_o conclusion_n conclusion_n than_o i_o have_v purpose_v but_o i_o may_v run_v over_o the_o last_o so_o much_o the_o more_o speedy_o for_o know_v how_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v infect_v with_o pestilent_a disease_n the_o contagion_n whereof_o as_o 44._o the_o leper_n sore_o because_o it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o they_o who_o dwell_v near_o it_o must_v therefore_o 46._o be_v remove_v out_o of_o the_o camp_n of_o the_o faithful_a we_o may_v be_v assure_v that_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o england_n scotland_n france_n germany_n and_o other_o kingdom_n &_o common_a weal_n have_v sever_v themselves_o lawful_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o that_o be_v do_v lawful_o which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o warrant_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 17●_n all_o who_o commandment_n be_v righteousness_n say_v the_o prophet_n but_o the_o reform_a church_n obey_v his_o commandment_n in_o sever_a themselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n therefore_o they_o sever_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n lawful_o for_o as_o ecclesiastical_a society_n and_o church-assembly_n be_v ordain_v by_o god_n that_o 13._o his_o elect_a and_o choose_v shall_v 12._o seek_v he_o and_o 29._o praise_v he_o that_o be_v 2.42_o learn_v to_o know_v he_o and_o 42._o worship_v he_o be_v know_v so_o where_o his_o right_a faith_n and_o knowledge_n be_v not_o teach_v or_o he_o be_v not_o serve_v and_o worship_v aright_o thence_o do_v he_o command_v his_o servant_n to_o depart_v to_o depart_v first_o from_o that_o church-assembly_n where_o his_o right_a faith_n and_o knowledge_n be_v not_o teach_v the_o charge_n be_v give_v to_o timothee_n who_o s._n paul_n 3_o advertise_v of_o such_o as_o teach_v other_o doctrine_n than_o he_o do_v and_o not_o the_o wholesome_a word_n of_o christ_n and_o godly_a doctrine_n ●_o declare_v the_o quality_n and_o fruit_n of_o those_o 7.15_o wolf_n and_o 6.5_o bid_v he_o depart_v from_o they_o from_o such_o say_v paul_n 〈◊〉_d depart_v thou_o depart_v thou_o from_o their_o assembly_n and_o church_n for_o so_o must_v such_o teacher_n be_v depart_v from_o as_o himself_o declare_v by_o his_o example_n at_o ephesus_n where_o 8._o he_o frequent_v the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o month_n but_o 9_o when_o certain_a obstinate_a &_o disobedient_a person_n speak_v evil_a of_o the_o way_n of_o god_n before_o the_o multitude_n he_o 〈◊〉_d depart_v from_o they_o and_o separate_v the_o disciple_n so_o that_o he_o sever_v not_o himself_o only_o but_o other_o also_o from_o that_o church_n wherein_o the_o way_n of_o god_n be_v evil_o speak_v of_o and_o man_n be_v not_o teach_v to_o know_v and_o believe_v in_o he_o aright_o now_o that_o we_o must_v likewise_o depart_v from_o that_o church_n wherein_o god_n be_v not_o serve_v and_o worship_v aright_o it_o be_v write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n who_o be_v admonish_v 1●_n to_o flee_v from_o idolatry_n and_o from_o all_o communion_n with_o idolatrous_a worship_n be_v charge_v 14._o not_o to_o yoke_v themselves_o with_o idolater_n in_o their_o assembly_n &_o méetinge_n for_o what_o fellowship_n have_v righteousness_n with_o unrighteousness_n light_a with_o darkness_n 15._o christ_n with_o belial_n the_o faithful_a with_o the_o infidel_n 16._o the_o temple_n of_o god_n with_o idol_n 17._o wherefore_o come_v out_o from_o among_o they_o and_o separate_v yourselves_o say_v the_o lord_n separate_a yourselves_o from_o they_o say_v the_o lord_n the_o lord_n say_v not_o i_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o the_o jew_n 4.15_o go_v you_o not_o up_o to_o beth-aven_a not_o hosea_n but_o the_o lord_n say_v it_o be_v call_v ●5_n beth-el_a but_o it_o be_v 10.5_o
2d_o ep._n 〈◊〉_d afric_n ad_fw-la bonifacium_fw-la &_o c●lestinum_n c●lestinum_n cont._n julian._n p●lag●_n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o 4._o 〈◊〉_d tempore_fw-la prio_fw-la loco_fw-la loco_fw-la epist._n 16●_n 16●_n 〈…〉_o chapt._n 7._o divi●_n ●_o ●_o motiu_fw-la 14._o the_o first_o division_n division_n 1._o tim._n 3.15_o 3.15_o mal._n 2._o ver_fw-la 7._o 7._o ver_fw-la 8._o 8._o 1._o tim._n 1.3_o 1.3_o council_n flor._n session_n ult._n laon_n chalcocondylas_n de_fw-fr rebus_fw-la turc_n lib._n 6._o 6._o ep._n 55._o ad_fw-la cornelium_n cornelium_n statutum_n est_fw-la omnibus_fw-la nobis_fw-la nobis_fw-la jam_fw-la causa_fw-la eo●rum_fw-la cognita_fw-la cit_fw-la cit_fw-la sciunt_fw-la quo_fw-la r●uertantur_fw-la r●uertantur_fw-la ●isi_fw-la paucis_fw-la desperatis_fw-la &_o perciti_fw-la ●●uinor_fw-la videtur_fw-la 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o the_o discoverer_n 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o it_o be_v sanders_n answer_v de_fw-fr vi_fw-it 〈…〉_o lib._n ●_o ●_o lib._n ●_o epist_n 3._o ad_fw-la step_v 〈…〉_o epi●t_o 67._o pa●_n pa●_n staplet_n p●●n●_n doctrine_n l._n 6._o c._n 17_o ●he_v discou_fw-fr of_o 〈◊〉_d 3._o 3._o ad_fw-la coepiscopos_fw-la no●●ros_fw-la in_o ga●●●s_n ga●●●s_n e●p_fw-mi ovinciam_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la p●●ebem_fw-la ●_o rel●ate_o cond●entem_fw-la cond●entem_fw-la de_fw-fr reforma●_n eccle_n consid_fw-la 3._o 3._o epist._n synod_n african_n ad_fw-la cler_n &_o pleb_n in_o hispan_n cyprian_a ep._n 68_o 68_o epist._n 67._o ad_fw-la stephanum_n stephanum_n ide●rco_fw-mi ●aim_fw-fr ●●p●osum_fw-la corpu●_n est_fw-la s●cer●otum_fw-la concor●iae_fw-la 〈◊〉_d glut●no_fw-la a●que_fw-la unitatis_fw-la vinculo_fw-la c●pulas_fw-la tum_fw-la ut_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la ex_fw-la collegio_fw-la nostro_fw-la 〈…〉_o facere_fw-la &_o greg●m_o chri●●●●e_a 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈…〉_o bueniant_fw-la cateri_fw-la quasi_fw-la pastor_n utiles_fw-la &_o misericordes_fw-la quiove_n domigicas_fw-la in_o gregem_fw-la colligant_fw-la colligant_fw-la aen._n siluius_n card._n ep_v 288._o 288._o bella●min_n 〈◊〉_d ●om_n controver_n 4._o quaest_n 5._o 5._o sigon_n de_fw-fr occident_n imper_v lib._n 1._o 1._o marcellini_fw-la papae_fw-la condemna●●o_fw-la tom._n 1._o cancilior_fw-la cancilior_fw-la as_o sigonius_n show_v the_o occident_n imperio_fw-la lib._n 1._o 1._o synod_n roma_fw-it sub_fw-la silu_a pap._n act_n 1._o cap._n 1._o 1._o platin_n de_fw-fr vi●_n ●otit_fw-la in_o marco_n 〈◊〉_d chronogr_n volume_n 2_o generate_fw-la 11._o vives_z the_o cawl_n corrupt_v a●●_n lib._n 2._o a●●●at_fw-la parerg_fw-mi iur_fw-fr lib._n 7._o ca._n 19_o 19_o synod_n ●om_n sub_fw-la ●iluest_a ●ap_n act_n 2._o 2._o that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o no_o man_n with_o the_o which_o worce_v almost_o all_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o secon●_o action_n begin_v most_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nemo_fw-la enim_fw-la dii●_n dicet_fw-la primam_fw-la sedem_fw-la cap._n 20_o 20_o euseb._n histor_n eccles_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 28._o &_o 29._o 29._o nemo_fw-la unquam_fw-la iudicavit_fw-la pontificem_fw-la nec_fw-la prae●●l_fw-la sacerdotem_fw-la suum_fw-la suum_fw-la council_n niscaen_fw-la can_v 4._o 4._o can_v 5._o the_o second_o division_n division_n can._n 6._o 6._o epist._n ad_fw-la michael_n imperatorem_fw-la concilior_fw-la tom._n 3._o sur._n sur._n can._n 9_o in_o the_o which_o nicolas_n say_v the_o pope_n be_v m●ant_a and_o none_o but_o the_o pope_n ●y_a primas_fw-la dia_z ce●●os●_n ●_z whereas_o in_o very_a truth_n the_o council_n mean_v every_o patriarch_n thereby_o as_o i_o have_v show_v chapt._n 8._o division_n 5._o 5._o hist._n eccle_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 6._o 6._o de_fw-fr concord_n cathol_n l._n 2._o c._n 13._o 13._o synod_n actau_fw-fr gener_fw-la constan●_n can_v 17._o 17._o distinct_a 65._o c●_n mos_fw-la antiq●us_fw-la antiq●us_fw-la quando_fw-la quidem_fw-la &_o ●omano_fw-la ●piscopo_fw-la parilis_fw-la 〈…〉_o id_fw-la 〈◊〉_d si_fw-la nilis_fw-la in_o who_o a●dam_n quo_fw-la ●●am_fw-la uterque_fw-la deponitepisc●●●s_fw-la deponitepisc●●●s_fw-la well_fw-mi dic_fw-la romano_n id_fw-la est_fw-la constantinopolitano_fw-it constantinopolitano_fw-it me●ius_n &_o planius_fw-la secundum_fw-la hug._n hug._n sigon_n de_fw-fr occi_fw-la imper._n lib._n 3._o &_o 4._o 4._o in_o summa_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la metropolitan_a episcopo_fw-la episcopo_fw-la carranz_n annot_v in_o 6._o can_n conc._n ni●aen_n ni●aen_n in_o council_n chalced._n act_n 16._o 16._o d●●en_n sid_n trident._n l._n 2._o 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bellarmin_n in_o praelect_v rom._n contr_n 4._o quaest_n 5._o the_o abridgement_n of_o controversy_n controu_n 3._o quaest_n 4._o 4._o ecclesia_fw-la romana_fw-la semper_fw-la habuit_fw-la primatum_fw-la primatum_fw-la action_n 16._o 16._o quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la romana_fw-la semper_fw-la ●abuit_fw-la primatum_fw-la primatum_fw-la a_o book_n so_o entitle_v touch_v the_o controversy_n of_o our_o time_n compile_v by_o robert_n person_n out_o of_o the_o dictate_v of_o the_o jesuite_n for_o ou●_n english_a student_n and_o use_v to_o be_v write_v out_o by_o the_o hearer_n thereof_o in_o the_o seminary_n wherein_o because_o such_o libel_n go_v in_o write_v only_o among_o their_o own_o novice_n they_o co●_n and_o lie_v more_o bold_o the●_n common_o they_o dare_v in_o print_n as_o any_o man_n that_o have_v it_o if_o he_o compare_v their_o tractate_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n with_o this_o our_o conference_n shall_v perceive_v perceive_v rescript_n jul._n pap._n contra_fw-la orient_n council_n tom._n 1._o 1._o council_n nicen._n edit_n ab_fw-la alfonso_n pisano_n can_v 39_o 39_o annot._n in_o dist._n 16._o c._n septuaginta_fw-la septuaginta_fw-la chapt._n 8._o divis_fw-la 6._o 6._o in_o sacro_fw-la nostrae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sedis_fw-la scrinio_fw-la scrinio_fw-la testis_fw-la est_fw-la divinitas_fw-la divinitas_fw-la in_o council_n carthag_n 6._o &_o african_n african_n epist._n egypt_n episcopor_fw-la ad_fw-la mar●um_fw-la pap._n con●●rom_n 1._o 1._o rescript_n mar●i_fw-la p●p_n athanasi●_n &_o omnibus_fw-la egypt_n episcop_n episcop_n epist._n ad_fw-la orthodoxos_fw-la i●_n pe●●equ●t_fw-la pe●●equ●t_fw-la in_o chronico_fw-la chronico_fw-la alan_n cop._n dialog_n 1._o cap._n 7._o 7._o cap._n 12._o 12._o conc._n cart._n 6._o &_o africanum_n africanum_n conc._n catthag_n 6._o c._n 9_o 9_o conc._n african_n c._n 102._o 102._o c._n 103._o 103._o hist._n eccle_n l._n 1._o c._n 6._o though_o he_o reckon_v two_o &_o twenty_o by_o divide_v some_o of_o they_o as_o can_v 6._o &_o 3_o 3_o in_o princip_n concilior_fw-la de_fw-fr s●nodis_fw-la princip_n princip_n co●c_fw-la antioch_n can_v 1._o theod●ret_n hist._n eccles_n l._n 1_o c._n 9_o 9_o canon_n &_o decre●a_n council_n trid●●ti●i_fw-la trid●●ti●i_fw-la conc._n carthag_n 6_o c._n 3._o 3._o epist._n council_n africa_n 1._o ad_fw-la boni●ac_n &_o caele_v c._n 101._o &_o 105._o 105._o bellarmin_n in_o praelect_a rom._n contr._n 4._o q._n 5._o 5._o council_n niche_n edit_fw-la ab_fw-la al●on_n pisan._n can_v 8._o the_o three_o division_n division_n conc._n antioch_n can_v 19_o 19_o can_v 6._o &_o 12._o &_o 20._o 20._o can_v 14._o 14._o can_v 1●_n 1●_n conc._n sardic_n can_v 5._o 5._o that_o be_v of_o his_o clergy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n whence_o the_o name_n of_o legate_n a_o latere_fw-la be_v take_v take_v epist._n ad_fw-la caelestin_n council_n african_n c._n 100l_n 100l_n cusan_a de_fw-fr concordant_a cath●l_n l._n 2._o c._n 25._o 25._o athan._n in_o apolog_n 2._o 2._o conc._n sa●dic_n can_v 3._o 3._o theodoret._n hist._n eccle_n l._n ●_o cap._n 8._o 8._o privilegium_fw-la personale_fw-la extinguitur_fw-la cum_fw-la persona_fw-la de_fw-fr regulis_fw-la jur._n in_o sext_n sext_n saunder_n de_fw-fr vi●ib_n monar_n eccles_n lib._n 7._o alan_n cop._n dialog_n 1._o cap._n 6._o 6._o conc._n sardic_n can_v 3._o &_o 5._o 5._o can_v 23._o &_o 14._o 14._o plini_n hist._n nat_n l._n 17._o c._n 4._o 4._o conc._n constan●inop_n can_v 2._o 2._o 〈◊〉_d 3._o 3._o can_v 6._o 6._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d masi●s_n in_o josuam_fw-la cap._n 20._o 20._o livi._n lib._n 1._o 1._o ●onc_fw-fr afric_n cap._n 101._o 101._o cap._n 105._o 105._o conc._n mile●itan_n can_v 22._o 22._o ad_fw-la ●ransmarina_fw-la iudicia_fw-la they_o term_v it_o whereby_o the_o pope_n be_v mean_v though_o gratian_n fond_o do_v except_o he_o 2._o q._n 6._o c._n placuit_fw-la ut_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la conc._n carth._n grac._n can_v 28._o 28._o epist._n council_n african_n ad_fw-la c●lestin_n cap._n 105._o 105._o vnive●sale_n mean_v a_o synod_n of_o t●e_v diocese_n not_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n council_n cons●antinop_n can_v 6._o 6._o fumosum_fw-la typhum_fw-la saeculi_fw-la saeculi_fw-la confess_v aug._n l._n 1._o c._n 9_o tit_v 6._o 6._o campian_n ra●ione_fw-la 4._o the_o four_o division_n division_n in_o sentent_fw-fr super_fw-la petitione_n episcopor_fw-la cypr._n cypr._n can._n 1._o &_o ●●_o ●●_o action_n 16._o 16._o council_n chalce_v can_v 28._o 28._o can_v 9_o &_o 17._o 17._o ann._n comne●a_o alexiad_n l._n 1._o 1._o dist._n 22._o c._n reno●antes_n reno●antes_n sext._n synod_n constantinopolit_fw-la in_o tr●ll_n can_v 36._o 36._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d non_fw-fr ●ame●_n magnificetur_fw-la magnificetur_fw-la cop._n dialog_n 1._o cap._n 5._o 5._o praefat._n synod_n in_o trullo_n ad_fw-la justinian_n justinian_n synod_n nicaen_fw-la ●ecund_a can_v 1._o 1._o synod_n octau_fw-fr gener_fw-la constantinopolit_fw-la can_v
vea_o 27._o 27._o ver_fw-la 20._o 20._o 1._o tim._n 1.17_o 1.17_o rom._n 11.20_o 11.20_o gal._n 6.2_o 6.2_o phil._n 2.12_o 2.12_o 2._o cor._n 12.9_o 12.9_o mark_n 9.24_o 9.24_o luk._n 7.47_o 7.47_o luk._n 17.5_o 17.5_o luk._n 11.4_o 11.4_o de_fw-fr perfect_a obed_a leg_n dei_fw-la dei_fw-la contr._n b●●ntium_n lib._n 3._o 3._o matt._n 26.15_o 26.15_o 1._o joh._n 2_o 1●_n 1●_n gal._n 1.6_o 1.6_o 1._o cor._n 11.18_o &_o 15.12_o 15.12_o reu._n 2._o for_o 15._o 15._o ver_fw-la 20._o 20._o reu._n 3._o for_o 2._o 2._o ver_fw-la 15._o 15._o reu._n 1.12_o 1.12_o 1._o tim._n 3.15_o 3.15_o 1._o tim._n 3.15_o 3.15_o reu._n 2._o for_o 4._o 4._o ●●r_fw-fr 5._o 5._o reu._n ●_o ●●_o ●●_o matt._n 18_o 1●_n 1●_n joh._n 10._o ver_fw-la 12._o 12._o ver_fw-la 10._o 10._o bernard_n in_o ●antic_a ser._n 33._o 33._o 1._o cor._n 3.10_o 3.10_o 2._o pet._n 2.1_o 2.1_o euseb._n hist._n eccles_n l._n 7._o c._n 22._o 22._o theodoret._n hist._n eccles_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o 2._o socrat._n hist._n ecc_fw-la l._n 7._o c._n 29._o &_o 32._o 32._o theodoret._n hist._n eccles_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 16._o 16._o hieron_n dial_n count_n lucifer_n cap._n 7._o &_o in_o chronico_fw-la athanas_n epist_n the_o synod_n arim._n &_o seleuciae_fw-la seleuciae_fw-la in_o epist_n ad_fw-la procopium_n procopium_n can._n 59_o 59_o constantinop_n in_o trul._n can_v 2._o council_n nicen._n secund_a can_v 1._o 1._o can._n 47._o 47._o session_n 4._o 4._o can._n 6._o 6._o capit._fw-la 5._o apud_fw-la innocen●_n tert_n tert_n sess._n 4._o &_o 5._o 5._o aene._n silu._n the_o council_n basil_n council_n flor._n &_o ferrar._n in_o concilij_fw-la indict_v indict_v bristol_n motiu_fw-la 3_o and_z demand_n 8._o the_o three_o conclusion_n conclusion_n 2._o tim._n 3.16_o 3.16_o tit._n 1.2_o 1.2_o de●ens_fw-la ●id_fw-la ●ri●_n lib._n 1._o 1._o registr_n lib._n 2._o ●nd_n 11._o ep_n 10._o 10._o temer●_n &_o nulla_fw-la ratione_fw-la ratione_fw-la non_fw-la afflatu●_fw-la sancti_fw-la spiritus_fw-la spiritus_fw-la rumoris_fw-la auram_fw-la inanem_fw-la inanem_fw-la hominum_fw-la opiniones_fw-la sallace_n sallace_n council_n 6._o ●●●nor_n constan●inop_n action_n 13._o 13._o ecclesiast_fw-la hi●●rar_fw-it l._n ●_o c._n ●_o ●_o non_fw-la ut_fw-la praeessent_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la subcisent_fw-fr subcisent_fw-fr histor._n nature_n lib._n 36._o cap._n 10._o 10._o mal._n 4.2_o 4.2_o mat._n 18.17_o 18.17_o de_fw-fr bapt_a conc_fw-fr donatist_n lib._n 2._o c._n 3._o 3._o 〈◊〉_d 1._o ●_o ●_o matt._n 7.19_o 7.19_o 2._o pet._n 2.1_o 2.1_o 2._o king_n 18._o ●●_o ●●_o leo._n epist_n 8●_n ad_fw-la episcopos_fw-la palaest_n 〈◊〉_d rhetor_n 1._o demosthen_n contr_n a●●stocrat_n lucian_n in_o anachar_n anachar_n ac●_n 1●_n 35_o the_o four_o conclusion_n conclusion_n eph._n 1_o 4●_n 4●_n 1._o pet._n 2._o ●_o ●_o matt._n 2d_o 34_o 34_o hebr._n 12.22_o reu._n 2d_o 2_o 2_o psal._n 87.1_o 87.1_o joh._n 10_o 1●_n 1●_n eph._n ●_o 19_o 19_o reu._n 20_o 1●_n 1●_n gen._n 17.7_o leu._n ●6_n 12_o ●er_n 3●_n ●3_n ●eb_fw-mi 8.10_o 8.10_o heb._n 12.23_o 12.23_o ephes._n 1_o 5._o 5._o ephes._n 4.16_o &_o 5.23_o 5.23_o esai_n 1.4_o 1.4_o ma●t_fw-la 7.23_o 7.23_o zach._n 14.21_o 14.21_o reu._n 21._o ●7_n ●7_n rom._n 8.30_o 8.30_o eph._n 5.26_o 5.26_o reu._n ●9_n 8_o 8_o which_o be_v name_v proselyte_n mat._n 23._o ●5_n act●_n ●_z 10_o &_o 13_o 4●_n 4●_n esai_n 5●_n 2_o 2_o mat._n 28.19_o 28.19_o act._n 1.8_o 1.8_o act._n 10.28_o &_o 11.2_o 11.2_o galatin_n de_fw-fr a●●an_n cathol_n ver_fw-la lib._n 9_o c._n 12._o 12._o eph._n 2._o ver_fw-la 14._o 14._o ver_fw-la ●0_n ●0_n psal._n 87.4_o 87.4_o reu._n 5.9_o 5.9_o council_n constant_n sess._n 15._o 15._o artic._n ●_o ●_o artic._n 6._o 6._o strom._n lib._n 7._o 7._o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la eph._n cap._n 3._o 3._o moral_a in_o job._n lib._n 28._o cap._n 9_o 9_o in_o cantic_a sermon_n 78._o 78._o throughout_o all_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la dei_fw-la de_fw-fr rudib_n catechiz_fw-fr cap._n 20._o 20._o de_fw-fr bapt_a count_n donatist_n l._n 5._o cap._n 27._o 27._o fran._n duar._n the_o ●acr_n eccles_n minist_n l._n 5._o c._n 11._o 11._o extra_n c._n unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la de_fw-fr maioritat_fw-la &_o obedient_a obedient_a catechism_n council_n trid._n in_o exposit_n symb_n symb_n eph._n 4._o ●6_n ●6_n rom._n 4.7_o 4.7_o matt._n 5.8_o 5.8_o mat._n 7._o ver_fw-la 24._o 24._o ver_fw-la 25._o 25._o joh._n 11._o ver_fw-la 49_o 49_o ver_fw-la 50._o the_o five_o conclusion_n conclusion_n 1._o pet._n 1.23_o 1.23_o 1._o cor._n 3.2_o 3.2_o heb._n 5.14_o 5.14_o eph._n 6._o ver_fw-la 17._o 17._o ver_fw-la 16._o 16._o psal._n 50._o ●5_n ●5_n reu._n 12._o for_o 9_o 9_o that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o adversary_n adversary_n ver_fw-la 13._o &_o 17._o 17._o mat._n 13.25_o 13.25_o esai_n 1.21_o eze._n 16.15_o hof_n 2.2_o and_o the_o rest_n in_o m●ny_a place_n place_n gal._n 1._o ver_fw-la ●_o ●_o ver_fw-la 6._o &_o 7_o 7_o 2._o cor._n 11._o ●_o ●_o reu._n ●_o ●5_n ●5_n reu._n 3._o for_o 13._o 13._o ver_fw-la 1._o 1._o ver_fw-la 2._o 2._o ver_fw-la 4._o 4._o matt._n 3_o 1●_n 1●_n matt._n 13.27_o 13.27_o 2._o tim._n 2.20_o 2.20_o galen_n de_fw-fr sanit_fw-la tuend_a lib_n 1._o cap._n 2._o 2._o appian_n de_fw-fr bell_n parth._n parth._n de_fw-fr re_fw-mi military_a l_o 3._o c._n 2._o 2._o 1._o pet._n 1_o 23._o ●_o 2.2_o 2.2_o wier_n de_fw-fr praest●g_n daemon_n l._n 3._o c._n 17._o 17._o amos_n 8.11_o 8.11_o 1._o tim._n 6._o ver_fw-la 3._o 3._o ver_fw-la 4._o 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ●_o tim._n 2.17_o 2.17_o mat._n 21._o ●●_o ●●_o reu._n 2.5_o 2.5_o as_o bristol_n moriu_n 12._o with_o this_o special_a note_n in_o the_o m●rgent_a of_o his_o book_n note_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o catholic_a church_n church_n cod._n de_fw-fr s●mma_fw-la trin._n &_o ●ide_v cathol_a cathol_a epist._n 55._o ad_fw-la co●nelium_n co●nelium_n 〈…〉_o by_o ●he_v epistle_n of_o cardinal_n cusanus_fw-la write_v to_o the_o bohemian_o cochlaeus_fw-la hi●●or_fw-la mussitar_n lib._n 11._o 11._o de_fw-fr sa●it_fw-fr turn_v lib._n 1._o cap._n ●_o &_o 5._o 5._o appendix_n apolog._n eccles_n angl._n angl._n apologia_fw-la eccle_n angli●a●_n angli●a●_n joh._n 21.16_o 21.16_o matt._n 28.20_o 28.20_o 1._o pet._n 1.23_o 1.23_o 1._o pet._n 2.2_o 2.2_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d matt._n 23._o ●_o ●_o matt._n 16.6_o 16.6_o council_n trident_n sess._n 4._o 4._o 3._o ●sdr_n 4.43_o &_o 5.73_o ecclesiastic_a 46.23_o &_o 48.10_o 2._o mac._n cap._n 1.19_o &_o 2.1_o 2.1_o 4._o esdr._n 10.20_o &_o 2._o maccab._n 2.4_o 1._o maccab._n 1.16_o &_o 9.5_o touch_v antiochus_n se●_n the_o annotation_n of_o franciscus_n junius_n on_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la apocrypha_fw-la the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n hier._n praefat_fw-la in_o judith_n &_o caet_fw-la lib._n apocr_n josephus_n c●nti_fw-la apion_n l._n 1._o andrad_n desen_n fid_fw-we trid._n lib._n 3._o 3._o council_n l●●d_n can_v 59_o athana_n in_o synopsi_fw-la sacra●_n scripturae_fw-la nazianzen_n in_o carminib_fw-la epiphan_n lib._n de_fw-fr mensur_fw-fr &_o ponder_v hieron_n praesat_fw-la in_o libr._n sol●m_n sol●m_n council_n trid._n sess._n 4._o 4._o 2._o tim._n 3.16_o see_v the_o first_o conclusion_n conclusion_n ba●il_n de_fw-fr spir_n sanc●_n cap._n 27._o epiph._n haer_fw-mi 7●_n 7●_n bristol_n mo●_n 9_o &_o 46._o &_o andr._n ●●fen_v fid_fw-we trid._n lib._n 2._o 2._o council_n trid._n sess._n 4._o 4._o comment_fw-fr in_o prophet_n &_o now_o ●estam_fw-la ●estam_fw-la august_n de_fw-fr doctr_n christian._n l._n 16.2_o cap._n 15._o hilar._n in_o psal._n 2._o &_o the_o rest_n who_o prefer_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o seventie_o interpreter_n see_v august_n de_fw-fr civet_n dei_fw-la lib._n 18._o cap._n 43._o 43._o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la clement_n sept_fw-fr sept_fw-fr annot._fw-la prio_fw-la in_o pandect_a defence_n fid_fw-we trid._n lib._n 4._o 4._o tom._n 8._o bibli_fw-la reg._n in_o praefat_fw-la praefat_fw-la council_n trid._n ●ess_n 4._o 4._o cusan_a ad_fw-la bohemos_n ep_v 2._o 2._o council_n trid._n ●ess_n 6._o cap._n 10._o 10._o matt._n 15.9_o 15.9_o 1._o sam._n 15.23_o 15.23_o col._n 2.23_o 2.23_o council_n try_v sess._n 25._o 25._o greg._n registr_n lib._n 9_o ep_n 9_o 9_o by_o the_o word_n idiotae_fw-la which_o gregory_n use_v in_o this_o point_n he_o mean_v the_o unlearned_a that_o can_v not_o read_v thing_n write_v of_o who_o he_o say_v that_o paint_v have_v the_o same_o use_n for_o idiote_n which_o writing_n have_v for_o they_o that_o read_v read_v jere._n 10.8_o 10.8_o hab._n 2.18_o 2.18_o col._n 3.16_o 3.16_o deu._n 6.9_o &_o 11.18_o &_o 31.11_o luke_n 11.28_o reu._n 1.3_o 1.3_o nehem._n 8_o 9_o luk._n 4.17_o act._n 8.30_o &_o 13.15_o &_o 17.11_o 17.11_o all_o the_o ancient_a church_n as_o appear_v by_o jerom_n epist._n ad_fw-la laetam_fw-la de_fw-fr institut_fw-la filiae_fw-la ad_fw-la demetr_v de_fw-fr virgin_n ad_fw-la fur._n de_fw-fr viduit_fw-la seruand_fw-fr by_o chrysost._n in_o joan._n homil_n 16._o prooemio_fw-la in_o epist_n ad_fw-la rom._n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la col._n hom_n 9_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n father_n dialog_n de_fw-fr
trust_n in_o he_o 7.47_o stir_v up_o our_o love_n towards_o he_o and_o pray_v unto_o he_o hearty_o 17.5_o increase_v our_o faith_n 11.4_o forgeve_v our_o sin_n in_o a_o word_n that_o we_o may_v run_v the_o whole_a race_n of_o our_o life_n with_o great_a steadfastness_n and_o constancy_n then_o since_o these_o thing_n be_v thus_o it_o be_v to_o be_v conclude_v that_o the_o godly_a be_v lead_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n into_o all_o truth_n and_o holiness_n even_o to_o salvation_n but_o to_o this_o salvation_n they_o be_v so_o lead_v that_o they_o be_v not_o free_a from_o all_o spot_n and_o wrinkle_n either_o of_o manner_n or_o of_o doctrine_n touch_v which_o point_n on_o the_o one_o side_n in_o respect_n of_o manner_n dei_fw-la sebastian_z castellio_n have_v err_v very_o shameful_o hold_v this_o heretical_a opinion_n among_o other_o that_o the_o regenerate_v be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o law_n of_o god_n perfect_o which_o thing_n it_o be_v blasphemous_a to_o affirm_v of_o any_o but_o of_o christ_n only_o on_o the_o other_o side_n in_o respect_n of_o doctrine_n 3._o hosius_n the_o cardinal_n have_v overshoot_v himself_o as_o foul_o say_v that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o elect_n may_v err_v as_o by_o s._n cyprian_n example_n he_o show_v but_o that_o all_o the_o faithful_a gather_v together_o in_o one_o can_v err_v which_o be_v a_o fancy_n of_o a_o man_n that_o will_v build_v castle_n in_o the_o air_n it_o be_v a_o matter_n therefore_o most_o sure_a and_o out_o of_o doubt_n that_o the_o elect_a and_o choose_a may_v err_v as_o in_o manner_n so_o in_o doctrine_n too_o though_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o die_v but_o live_v notwithstanding_o and_o be_v cure_v of_o their_o error_n marry_o that_o they_o who_o be_v not_o choose_v but_o only_o call_v may_v err_v even_o to_o death_n as_o well_o in_o doctrine_n as_o in_o manner_n in_o manner_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o 26.15_o judas_n who_o be_v bring_v through_o covetousness_n to_o betray_v christ_n in_o doctrine_n we_o may_v see_v by_o those_o monstrous_a heretic_n of_o who_o s._n john_n say_v 1●_n they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o us._n wherefore_o since_o both_o the_o choose_a and_o the_o call_v may_v err_v the_o one_o to_o their_o trial_n the_o other_o to_o their_o destruction_n and_o the_o church_n militant_a consist_v of_o none_o but_o of_o the_o call_v and_o the_o choose_a that_o which_o i_o propose_v be_v prove_v sufficient_o that_o the_o militant_a church_n may_v err_v not_o only_o in_o manner_n but_o in_o doctrine_n also_o if_o any_o man_n for_o proof_n thereof_o require_v example_n he_o have_v the_o church_n of_o 1.6_o galatia_n of_o 15.12_o corinth_n of_o 15._o pergamus_n of_o 20._o thyatira_n of_o 2._o sardis_n and_o of_o 15._o la●dicea_n all_o the_o which_o to_o omit_v example_n of_o our_o own_o time_n the_o scripture_n witness_v to_o have_v err_v some_o of_o they_o in_o manner_n some_o in_o doctrine_n some_o in_o both_o yea_o the_o very_a church_n of_o 1.12_o ephesus_n itself_o which_o christ_n show_v to_o john_n in_o the_o figure_n of_o 3.15_o a_o candlestick_n because_o it_o hold_v the_o light_n of_o life_n which_o timothee_n abide_v in_o when_o paul_n write_v unto_o he_o that_o 3.15_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o the_o truth_n even_o this_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v impair_v so_o great_o by_o 4._o leave_v of_o her_o first_o love_n that_o christ_n do_v therefore_o threaten_v she_o 5._o he_o will_v remove_v her_o candlestick_n out_o of_o his_o place_n unless_o she_o repent_v she_o repent_v not_o but_o by_o little_a and_o little_o become_v worse_a &_o worse_a and_o heap_a fault_n upon_o fault_n yea_o many_o fault_n upon_o one_o both_o in_o manner_n and_o doctrine_n therefore_o christ_n remove_v her_o candlestick_n out_o of_o his_o place_n the_o choose_a who_o shine_v with_o the_o light_n of_o faith_n he_o gather_v to_o himself_o the_o call_v who_o hate_v the_o light_n he_o give_v over_o to_o darkness_n &_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n the_o godly_a ●●_o he_o make_v pillar_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o his_o god_n the_o hypocrite_n the_o filth_n of_o the_o temple_n he_o cast_v out_o to_o the_o dunghill_n of_o the_o ungodly_a and_o he_o leave_v the_o city_n of_o ephesus_n desolate_a to_o wicked_a mahomet_n impiety_n now_o that_o may_v befall_v to_o every_o one_o as_o they_o say_v which_o may_v befall_v to_o any_o one_o then_o look_v what_o have_v befall_v to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n that_o may_v to_o every_o church_n but_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v shake_v first_o and_o craze_a afterward_o quite_o overthrow_v and_o be_v hereft_v of_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n be_v now_o a_o church_n no_o long_o then_o be_v there_o no_o church_n upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n howsoever_o it_o flatter_v itself_o with_o those_o title_n of_o the_o candlestick_n of_o christ_n &_o pillar_n of_o the_o truth_n there_o be_v no_o church_n i_o say_v who_o body_n that_o be_v the_o choose_a may_v not_o be_v overtake_v with_o faintness_n and_o darkness_n who_o dregs_n that_o be_v the_o hypocrite_n may_v not_o be_v consume_v with_o rottenness_n and_o destruction_n final_o who_o whole_a frame_n &_o constitution_n may_v not_o be_v deprive_v both_o of_o strength_n and_o beauty_n i_o know_v that_o the_o papist_n answer_v hereunto_o that_o the_o militant_a church_n may_v err_v for_o the_o flock_n the_o people_n that_o be_v in_o it_o but_o the_o guide_v and_o pastor_n who_o assembly_n be_v call_v the_o church_n by_o christ_n say_v 1●_n tell_v the_o church_n can_v not_o which_o be_v false_a and_o fond_a for_o as_o there_o be_v sheep_n and_o goat_n in_o the_o flock_n so_o the_o pastor_n of_o they_o be_v good_a hirelinge_n or_o thief_n the_o good_a one_o do_v slumber_n sometime_o as_o the_o apostle_n the_o 12._o hirelinge_n fly_v assoon_o as_o the_o wolf_n come_v the_o 10._o thief_n come_v to_o steal_v to_o kill_v and_o to_o destroy_v wherefore_o no_o pastor_n be_v exempt_a from_o danger_n of_o err_a more_o or_o less_o and_o for_o the_o former_a point_n that_o they_o may_v err_v in_o manner_n what_o need_v i_o bring_v apostles_n or_o prophet_n to_o prove_v it_o the_o complaint_n of_o bernard_n be_v fresh_a i_o will_v to_o god_n it_o be_v not_o too_o fresh_a 33._o there_o creep_v a_o owgly_a rot_n at_o this_o present_a through_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n which_o word_n be_v speak_v in_o reproof_n of_o the_o life_n and_o conversation_n of_o the_o prelate_n that_o be_v of_o the_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n do_v show_v that_o not_o a_o common_a disease_n but_o a_o rot_n and_o that_o not_o small_a but_o ugly_a and_o that_o creep_v on_o not_o keep_v at_o a_o stay_n may_v infect_v not_o only_o this_o or_o that_o member_n but_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o pastor_n for_o their_o manner_n now_o that_o they_o may_v also_o be_v oversee_v in_o doctrine_n and_o err_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v plain_o prove_v by_o those_o corinthian_a pastor_n 3.10_o who_o build_v hay_n and_o stubble_n upon_o the_o foundation_n that_o s._n paul_n have_v lay_v by_o they_o of_o who_o s._n peter_n foretell_v that_o 2.1_o there_o shall_v be_v false_a teacher_n in_o the_o new_a church_n as_o in_o the_o old_a there_o be_v false_a prophet_n by_o 22._o samosatenus_fw-la 2._o arius_n &_o 32._o nestorius_n pastor_n of_o famous_a church_n and_o autor_n of_o most_o heinous_a heresy_n yea_o by_o 16._o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n who_o all_o be_v arian_n in_o a_o manner_n when_o there_o be_v scarce_o leave_v a_o few_o catholic_n when_o seleuciae_fw-la the_o whole_a world_n do_v groan_v &_o wonder_n at_o itself_o that_o it_o be_v become_v a_o arian_n but_o the_o papist_n will_v reply_v that_o when_o they_o say_v the_o church_n can_v err_v they_o mean_v the_o church_n in_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o the_o schoolman_n call_v it_o representative_a that_o be_v bishop_n and_o prelate_n represent_v the_o whole_a church_n in_o a_o general_a council_n what_o and_o have_v that_o church_n i_o mean_v a_o general_a council_n this_o privilege_n that_o it_o can_v not_o err_v they_o hold_v so_o in_o deed_n but_o what_o will_v they_o say_v of_o so_o many_o counsel_n of_o the_o arian_n which_o cause_v procopium_n gregory_n nazianzene_n to_o despair_v that_o any_o good_a will_v be_v do_v by_o counsel_n but_o they_o deny_v these_o to_o have_v be_v lawful_a counsel_n what_o will_v they_o answer_v then_o to_o those_o which_o themselves_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v lawful_a the_o council_n of_o 59_o laodicea_n though_o a_o provincial_a council_n yet_o allow_v by_o 1._o a_o general_a do_v set_v down_o the_o same_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o both_o the_o old_a church_n have_v